Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n believe_v faith_n propound_v 3,192 5 10.4974 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A03885 A summary of controuersies Wherein are briefly treated the cheefe questions of diuinity, now a dayes in dispute betweene Catholikes & protestants: especially out of the holy Scripture. Written in Latin by the R. Father, Iames Gordon Huntley of Scotland, Doctour of Diuinity, of the Society of Iesus. And translated into English by I.L. of the same Society. The I. tome, deuided into two controuersies.; Controversiarum epitomes. English Gordon, James, 1541-1620.; Wright, William, 1563-1639. 1618 (1618) STC 13998; ESTC S104309 167,262 458

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

that_o name_n to_o the_o moravians_n at_o their_o first_o conversion_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n but_o this_o be_v 880._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o this_o custom_n be_v of_o no_o long_a continuance_n among_o they_o as_o appeareth_z 1._o baron_fw-fr tom._n 10._o a_o 880._o n._n 19_o &_o tom._n 11._o a_o 1080._o n._n 1._o by_o that_o which_o pope_n gregory_n the_o s●aventh_o write_v to_o the_o duke_n of_o bohemia_n &_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o caesar_n baronius_n 6._o the_o three_o assertion_n to_o translate_v the_o scripture_n into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v neither_o in_o itself_o unlawful_a nor_o forbid_v by_o any_o ecclesiastical_a law_n so_o it_o be_v true_o translate_v nay_o such_o a_o translation_n serve_v preacher_n to_o great_a use_n who_o be_v to_o cite_v and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n heretical_a translation_n be_v indeed_o forbid_v especial_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n because_o in_o they_o many_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v by_o false_a translate_n corrupt_v 7._o the_o four_o assertion_n it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n profitable_a to_o all_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n yea_o to_o many_o it_o be_v rather_o pernicious_a for_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o 26._o ●_o pet._n ult._n v._n 26._o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n that_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v many_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o unlearned_a and_o unstayed_a person_n deprave_v to_o their_o own_o destruction_n many_o also_o there_o be_v uncapable_a of_o meat_n and_o solid_a sustenance_n who_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v 12._o ●_o cor._n 3._o v._n 2._o heb._n ●_o v._o 12._o feed_v with_o milk_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v and_o for_o such_o it_o be_v more_o wholesome_a to_o be_v feed_v by_o the_o sermon_n and_o instruction_n of_o their_o pastor_n then_o to_o feed_v themselves_o with_o read_v the_o bible_n it_o be_v therefore_o great_a prudence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o forbid_v that_o the_o bible_n though_o translate_v and_o set_v forth_o by_o catholic_n shall_v be_v read_v of_o 4._o index_n li._n drohan_o reg._n 4._o all_o indifferent_o and_o without_o the_o approbation_n and_o leave_n of_o the_o bishop_n pastor_n or_o ghostly_a father_n 8._o our_o adversary_n object_n certain_a place_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n and_o s._n hierome_n in_o which_o they_o exhort_v to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o shall_v have_v observe_v that_o those_o father_n speak_v of_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n then_o extant_a or_o in_o the_o latin_a according_a to_o the_o old_a edition_n which_o be_v never_o forbid_v to_o any_o by_o the_o church_n whereas_o our_o controversy_n be_v about_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n out_o of_o the_o hebrew_n greek_a and_o latin_a into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n which_o be_v all_o for_o the_o most_o part_n corrupt_v 9_o and_o it_o be_v worthy_a the_o note_n that_o our_o adversary_n spend_v their_o time_n in_o vain_a in_o gather_v together_o argument_n by_o which_o to_o persuade_v man_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v learn_v out_o of_o they_o what_o they_o must_v necessary_o know_v if_o they_o will_v be_v save_v for_o how_o true_o or_o plain_o soever_o they_o be_v translate_v no_o man_n shall_v ever_o receyve_v any_o fruit_n by_o they_o unless_o he_o first_o believe_v aright_o and_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o guide_v we_o into_o the_o right_a 1●_n psal_n 142._o v._o 8._o &_o 1●_n land_n to_o make_v know_v unto_o we_o the_o way_n in_o which_o we_o be_v to_o walk_v to_o teach_v we_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o we_o be_v to_o fulfil_v which_o be_v manifest_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o jew_n who_o understand_v the_o hebrew_n text_n much_o better_a than_o christian_n in_o which_o there_o be_v so_o ample_a and_o clear_a mention_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o christ_n our_o adversary_n therefore_o have_v little_a reason_n to_o keep_v such_o ado_n about_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o translation_n of_o they_o let_v they_o first_o embrace_v the_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n only_o let_v they_o seek_v after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v out_o of_o the_o church_n let_v they_o seek_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o letter_n which_o the_o church_n only_o conserve_v uncorrupteed_n and_o it_o will_v easy_o be_v grant_v unto_o they_o to_o have_v the_o scripture_n in_o what_o tongue_n soever_o they_o will_v so_o they_o be_v true_o and_o uncorrupt_o translate_v and_o that_o they_o use_v they_o to_o their_o own_o salvation_n and_o not_o to_o their_o destruction_n as_o many_o do_v whereof_o we_o have_v for_o witness_v not_o only_o the_o scripture_n but_o daily_a experience_n and_o this_o shall_v suffice_v concern_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n 10._o for_o of_o the_o prayer_n in_o latin_a either_o private_o make_v by_o the_o people_n or_o public_o offer_v by_o the_o priest_n at_o mass_n and_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacramonts_n we_o will_v treat_v hereafter_o in_o their_o proper_a place_n chap._n xiii_o that_o our_o adversary_n use_v many_o sleight_n in_o corrupt_v the_o word_n of_o god_n our_o adversary_n often_o require_v we_o to_o prove_v all_o that_o which_o we_o say_v out_o of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n but_o when_o we_o cite_v the_o same_o in_o express_a term_n they_o have_v many_o way_n by_o which_o they_o deprave_v it_o wherefore_o before_o i_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o controversy_n concern_v the_o write_a word_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v from_o the_o purpose_n brief_o to_o detect_v such_o their_o corruption_n partly_o to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o man_n be_v deceive_v by_o they_o and_o partly_o that_o every_o man_n may_v understand_v nothing_o to_o be_v so_o plain_o and_o clear_o set_v down_o in_o the_o write_a word_n which_o by_o the_o commentary_n of_o crafty_a and_o subtle_a wit_n may_v not_o be_v weaken_v and_o make_v of_o little_a force_n if_o no_o regard_n be_v have_v to_o the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n may_v think_v that_o i_o herein_o calumniate_v they_o or_o deal_v less_o sincere_o with_o they_o i_o will_v set_v down_o out_o of_o their_o own_o writing_n some_o one_o or_o two_o exampl_n of_o each_o manner_n of_o corrupt_v whereof_o many_o will_v occur_v in_o each_o controversy_n 2._o the_o first_o manner_n of_o shift_v of_o place_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o write_a word_n be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o original_a text_n be_v corrupt_v and_o what_o be_v allege_v be_v creep_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o the_o text_n whereof_o see_v many_o example_n in_o the_o 12._o and_o 18._o chapter_n of_o the_o latin_a edition_n of_o this_o conttoversy_n 3._o their_o second_o shift_n be_v to_o reject_v the_o vulgar_a translation_n and_o instead_o thereof_o to_o cite_v some_o new_a and_o corrupt_a translation_n of_o their_o own_o it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o luther_n in_o his_o first_o version_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n into_o the_o german_a tongue_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n 1522._o have_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o error_n as_o many_o have_v observe_v among_o 1522._o joannes_n cocl_n eus_fw-la de_fw-fr act_n luther_n a_o 1522._o which_o neither_o the_o last_o nor_o the_o least_o be_v his_o presume_v to_o add_v to_o the_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n the_o 3._o chapter_n and_o 28._o verse_n the_o particle_n alone_o thereby_o the_o strongly_a to_o establish_v his_o doctrine_n that_o faith_n alone_o justifi_v for_o this_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o think_v a_o man_n i●_n 28._o rom._n 3._o v._n 28._o iustify_v by_o faith_n he_o translate_v by_o say_v alone_o &_o when_o a_o certain_a friend_n of_o he_o to_o who_o the_o same_o be_v object_v by_o a_o catholic_a ask_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o so_o translate_v it_o he_o no_o less_o ridiculous_o then_o proud_o answer_v in_o a_o certain_a little_a book_n set_v forth_o by_o he_o in_o the_o year_n 1530._o under_o this_o title_n a_o certain_a information_n or_o answer_v make_v to_o two_o question_n propose_v by_o a_o certain_a good_a friend_n concern_v the_o translation_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o which_o he_o advise_v his_o friend_n to_o answer_v the_o catholic_n objection_n after_o this_o manner_n d._n martin_n luther_n 475._o luth._o ●0_n 4._o germ._n excuso_fw-la wittemb_n a_o 1551._o fol._n 475._o will_v have_v it_o so_o and_o say_v that_o a_o papist_n and_o a_o ass_n i●_n all_o one_o thing_n so_o i_o will_v so_o i_o command_v let_v my_o
they_o as_o if_o christ_n shall_v teach_v that_o we_o can_v deserve_v life_n everlasting_a by_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o conclude_v say_v this_o answer_n of_o christ_n be_v according_a to_o the_o old_a law_n to_o wit_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v account_v just_a before_o god_n but_o he_o who_o shall_v satify_v the_o law_n which_o be_v impossible_a and_o 7._o calu._n in_o 16._o luc._n v._n 28._o l●b_fw-la 3._o instit_fw-la c._n 17._o sect_n 7._o upon_o the_o late_a place_n he_o write_v thus_o it_o be_v impossible_a say_v he_o to_o fulfil_v what_o the_o law_n command_v yea_o it_o be_v a_o principal_a axiom_n with_o caluin_n &_o a_o common_a answer_n to_o all_o such_o place_n a_o legal_a promise_n say_v he_o amnex_v to_o a_o condition_n impossible_a prove_v nothing_o &_o thus_o with_o s●ch_a impossibility_n they_o dally_v with_o we_o &_o with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n itself_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o rom._n calu._n &_o beza_n in_o c._n 2._o ad_fw-la rom._n dare_v affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o one_o chapter_n avouch_v unto_o we_o seven_o time_n thing_n impossible_a for_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o 2._o cap._n of_o the_o ep._n to_o the_o rom._n and_o 6._o v._n affirm_v 1565._o bez._n in_o c._n 2._o ad_fw-la r●_n v._o 6._o annot_v 6._o edit_n a_o 1550._o 1564._o 1565._o first_o that_o god_n will_v render_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n they_o interpret_v the_o place_n thus_o that_o god_n will_v indeed_o give_v to_o man_n according_a to_o their_o good_a work_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o but_o that_o no_o man_n can_v do_v any_o good_a work_n before_o god_n be_v there_o any_o man_n say_v beza_n that_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o bring_v these_o work_n which_o the_o apostle_n say_v shall_v be_v reward_v with_o eternal_a life_n and_o whereas_o in_o the_o seven_o v._n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o god_n do_v render_v life_n everlasting_a to_o such_o as_o seek_v the_o same_o by_o the_o patience_n of_o good_a work_n their_o answer_n be_v that_o he_o insinuate_v a_o thing_n impossible_a and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v do_v any_o good_a work_n before_o god_n no_o not_o the_o iusl_a man_n which_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o eternal_a damnation_n 4._o calu._n l._n 3._o instit_fw-la c._n 19_o sect_n 4._o whosoever_o say_v caluin_n have_v make_v the_o great_a progress_n before_o all_o other_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o they_o cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o lord_n god_n what_o work_n soever_o they_o attempt_v or_o go_v about_o they_o see_v it_o to_o be_v accurse_v and_o sure_o i_o for_o my_o part_n can_v easy_o believe_v that_o such_o be_v the_o progress_n of_o our_o adversarir_n in_o the_o way_n of_o our_o lord_n see_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o aposile_n place_n in_o the_o latin_a edition_n 2._o the_o ten_o &_o last_o shift_n be_v the_o wrest_n of_o diverse_a word_n to_o a_o wrong_a sense_n and_o to_o invent_v sundry_a different_a understanding_n of_o the_o word_n to_o build_v upon_o it_o many_o interpretation_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o and_o for_o a_o final_a conclusion_n to_o say_v the_o place_n be_v obscure_a and_o therefore_o prove_v nothing_o for_o 19_o luc._n 22._o v._n 19_o example_n hereof_o those_o most_o evident_a word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n with_o be_v give_v for_o you_o may_v suffice_v for_o some_o of_o they_o wrest_v the_o pronowne_n hoc_fw-la other_o the_o word_n est_fw-fr other_o the_o word_n corpus_fw-la other_o the_o pronowne_n meum_fw-la other_o the_o relative_a quod_fw-la other_o the_o preposition_n pro_fw-la other_o the_o pronowne_n vobis_fw-la and_o other_o the_o verb_n datur_fw-la and_o each_o word_n they_o wrest_v diverse_a way_n so_o as_o one_o more_o than_o 1577._o anno_fw-la 1577._o thirty_o year_n ago_o have_v gather_v out_o of_o their_o writing_n two_o hundred_o exposition_n of_o these_o few_o word_n of_o christ_n of_o which_o cl●u●ius_n the_o xaincte_n number_v particular_o 84._o and_o that_o they_o be_v both_o many_o and_o different_a yea_o repugnant_a wherewith_o they_o labour_v to_o make_v obscure_a these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n no_o man_n can_v doubt_v see_v another_o example_n in_o the_o latin_a edition_n and_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o note_v that_o in_o all_o these_o shift_n they_o serve_v themselves_o of_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v what_o they_o say_v whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o easy_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o corrupt_v the_o scripture_n by_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n but_o that_o the_o provident_a and_o daily_a care_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a 28._o 1._o ad_fw-la tim._n v._n 15._o matt._n 28._o church_n oppose_v itself_o against_o such_o corruption_n worthy_o therefore_o call_v the_o pillar_n and_o firmament_n of_o truth_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v finis_fw-la of_o tradition_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o first_o controversy_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n have_v already_o in_o the_o precedent_a treatise_n speak_v of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n thereunto_o belong_v now_o it_o remain_v we_o speak_v a_o little_a of_o the_o unwritten_a word_n common_o call_v tradition_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o state_n of_o this_o controversy_n may_v more_o easy_o be_v understand_v i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o four_o thing_n diligent_o to_o be_v consider_v in_o this_o matter_n we_o treat_v of_o the_o first_o be_v that_o by_o the_o unwritten_a word_n we_o only_o understand_v that_o which_o be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o old_a o●_n new_a testament_n for_o of_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v our_o whole_a controversy_n in_o this_o place_n wherefore_o that_o objection_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v both_o frivolous_a and_o nothing_o worth_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o call_v the_o unwritten_a word_n may_v be_v find_v extant_a either_o among_o the_o holy_a father_n or_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o counsel_n or_o other_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o nothing_o belong_v unto_o this_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o that_o this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o write_v in_o any_o book_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n 2._o the_o second_o be_v that_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o way_n the_o one_o way_n be_v implicit_a that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o some_o general_a principle_n from_o whence_o this_o other_o may_v be_v certain_o deduce_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n be_v contain_v in_o holy_a writ_n and_o not_o only_o in_o scripture_n but_o also_o in_o the_o apostle_n 40._o s._n aug._n in_o 140._o quaest_n upon_o exodus_fw-la tom._n 4._o matt._n 22._o v._n 40._o creed_n yea_o even_o in_o that_o one_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n so_o that_o it_o be_v diligent_o examine_v and_o well_o understand_v as_o s._n augustine_n very_o well_o note_v for_o so_o say_v christ_n the_o whole_a law_n and_o prophet_n do_v depend_v upon_o two_o precept_n of_o charity_n as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n s._n augustine_n note_v for_o see_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n in_o all_o thing_n &_o that_o it_o can_v neither_o deceive_v usnor_n be_v deceive_v as_o we_o will_v evident_o prove_v in_o the_o next_o controversy_n in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n it_o consequent_o also_o teach_v the_o whole_a and_o entire_a word_n of_o god_n see_v that_o all_o that_o which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v contain_v expressy_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o the_o scripture_n commend_v unto_o we_o as_o infallible_a as_o s._n augustine_n very_n well_o say_v and_o declare_v 16._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o contra_fw-la crescon_n gram._n c._n ●3_n &_o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la e●cles_n c._n 22._o in_o fine-matt_n 17_o v._o 5._o matt._n 81._o v._n 17._o luc._n 10._o 16._o in_o many_o place_n for_o even_o as_o god_n the_o father_n comprehend_v in_o these_o few_o word_n this_o be_v my_o wellbeloved_a son_n hear_v he_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n so_o christ_n propose_v unto_o we_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n when_o he_o command_v we_o to_o hear_v the_o church_n 3._o and_o in_o this_o sense_n do_v the_o holy_a father_n often_o time_n say_v that_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o wit_n in_o that_o general_a principle_n in_o the_o which_o they_o admonish_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n but_o many_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n saying_n be_v falsify_v &_o corrupt_v by_o martin_n ken_n nitius_fw-la and_o some_o caluinist_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o
it_o weak_a sophistical_a and_o erroneous_a 11._o beside_o that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o contrary_a illation_n of_o diverse_a man_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v altogether_o necessary_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o there_o may_v arise_v a_o certain_a and_o a_o undoubted_a faith_n of_o these_o matter_n of_o which_o sort_n tradition_n be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 12._o but_o when_o one_o believe_v such_o a_o illation_n with_o a_o divine_a or_o catholic_a faith_n he_o must_v needs_o know_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o be_v that_o the_o express_a place_n of_o scripture_n from_o whence_o this_o conclusion_n be_v deduce_v must_v certain_o be_v well_o understand_v by_o he_o which_o dispute_v the_o other_o be_v that_o he_o who_o make_v such_o a_o deduction_n and_o collection_n can_v neither_o deceive_v other_o nor_o be_v deceive_v himself_o but_o none_o can_v know_v either_o of_o these_o without_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n see_v that_o otherwise_o there_o be_v none_o which_o may_v not_o be_v deceive_v sometime_o all_o collection_n therefore_o which_o produce_v or_o breed_v faith_n in_o we_o do_v most_o clear_o convince_v and_o show_v the_o authority_n and_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n chap._n vii_o wherein_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n by_o the_o absurdity_n which_o otherwise_o will_v follow_v the_o five_o argument_n whereby_o we_o prove_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o holy_a scripture_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o absurdity_n which_o do_v ensue_v of_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n for_o have_v once_o admit_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n all_o old_a heresy_n be_v renew_v and_o a_o great_a uncertainty_n and_o confusion_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yea_o even_o the_o way_n to_o atheism_n be_v lay_v open_a because_o have_v once_o reject_v &_o despise_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o now_o explicate_v and_o prove_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n against_o heretic_n all_o those_o thing_n also_o which_o be_v decree_v and_o determine_v by_o all_o the_o general_a counc●lls_n in_o time_n pass_v against_o the_o say_a heretic_n lose_v their_o chief_a strength_n and_o authority_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o our_o adversary_n do_v acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o receive_v and_o believe_v 2._o neither_o do_v we_o know_v by_o a_o assure_a catholic_a faith_n whether_o there_o be_v ever_o any_o father_n or_o counsel_n but_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n but_o neither_o do_v we_o know_v any_o other_o way_n but_o by_o faith_n whether_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o now_o there_o be_v any_o catholic_n or_o no●_n because_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v since_o the_o time_n and_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v nothing_o extant_a in_o holy_a scripture_n see_v that_o all_o the_o book_n thereof_o be_v write_v before_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o such_o thing_n as_o have_v b●n_o do_v since_o till_o now_o can_v otherwise_o be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o neither_o be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o we_o know_v these_o thing_n by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n for_o that_o faith_n which_o proceed_v of_o history_n without_o the_o authority_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v but_o a_o humane_a faith_n which_o oftentimes_o deceave_v other_o and_o may_v be_v deceive_v itself_o and_o therefore_o these_o kind_n of_o history_n can_v produce_v a_o divine_a faith_n in_o we_o this_o experience_n itself_o do_v clear_o teach_v us._n for_o our_o adversary_n do_v sometime_o doubt_v whether_o s._n peter_n be_v ever_o at_o rome_n or_o no_o because_o forsooth_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v express_o in_o holy_a scripture_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v most_o assure_o prove_v and_o testify_v in_o many_o book_n both_o of_o the_o ancient_a historiographer_n and_o holy_a father_n why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o lawful_o call_v other_o matter_n in_o question_n which_o be_v notwithstanding_o express_o set_v down_o in_o other_o ancient_a writer_n our_o adversary_n therefore_o do_v make_v all_o thing_n very_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a while_o they_o will_v only_o believe_v and_o admit_v the_o scripture_n but_o now_o l●t_v we_o answer_v their_o argument_n chap._n viii_o wherein_o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n take_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v confute_v the_o first_o argument_n whereby_o our_o adversary_n oppugn_v tradition_n and_o which_o they_o use_v very_o often_o the_o which_o also_o as_o invincible_a they_o have_v add_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o ult._n rupell_v confess_v art_n 5._o deut._n 4._o v._o 2._o deut_n 12._o v._n ult._n faith_n they_o take_v out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o deuteronomy_n thou_o shall_v not_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o nor_o shall_v you_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o it_o and_o again_o that_o which_o i_o command_v thou_o do_v that_o only_o neither_o add_v or_o diminish_v any_o thing_n from_o it_o by_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n our_o adversary_n do_v infer_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o express_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n 2._o but_o this_o argument_n be_v erroneous_a and_o the_o weakness_n thereof_o be_v very_o great_a for_o many_o cause_n first_o because_o in_o those_o word_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o scripture_n nor_o of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n but_o only_o of_o the_o word_n preach_v and_o deliver_v viva_fw-la voce_fw-la thou_o shall_v not_o add_v say_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o i_o write_v unto_o you_o again_o do_v only_o say_v he_o that_o which_o i_o command_v thou_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o which_o i_o write_v unto_o thou_o 3._o moreover_o in_o these_o word_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v but_o also_o of_o ceremony_n and_o custom_n to_o be_v do_v and_o observe_v but_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v that_o these_o custom_n may_v be_v add_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o they_o have_v ordain_v themselves_o very_o many_o the_o which_o they_o change_v even_o yet_o when_o they_o please_v caluin_n also_o acknowledge_v that_o trident._n calu._n contra_fw-la 4_o sess_v council_n trident._n many_o unwritten_a custom_n be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n 4._o that_o also_o according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n be_v say_v to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v contrary_a &_o opposite_a unit_fw-la for_o josue_n do_v not_o transgress_v this_o commandment_n of_o deuteronomy_n when_o he_o add_v his_o book_n to_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n nor_o do_v other_o transgress_v it_o who_o add_v the_o book_n of_o the_o judge_n ruth_n and_o of_o the_o king_n which_o be_v not_o write_v by_o moses_n &_o which_o be_v also_o to_o be_v believe_v as_o contain_v point_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o these_o book_n there_o be_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o moses_n write_v and_o the_o hebrew_n text_n agree_v very_o well_o to_o this_o answer_n for_o in_o both_o place_n of_o deuter●nomy_n this_o word_n ghal_o be_v use_v which_o sig●●tieth_v o●tentines_n contrary_a or_o against_o so_o that_o the_o sense_n be_v do_v not_o add_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v and_o again_o you_o shall_v not_o add_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o for_o so_o be_v that_o particie_n g●●l_n take_v in_o the_o 40._o psalm_n or_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n 41._o in_o the_o 2._o psalm_n also_o the_o second_o verse_n and_o in_o the_o 14._o of_o number_n the_o 2._o verse_n &_o else_o where_o very_a often_o even_o as_o also_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o answer_v to_o the_o hebrew_n ghal_n signify_v also_o contrary_a or_o against_o when_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o 6._o 1._o ad_fw-la cor._n 4._o v._n 6._o corinthian_n that_o in_o we_o you_o may_v learn_v one_o not_o to_o be_v puff_v up_o against_o another_o above_o that_o be_v write_v that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o say_v we_o must_v not_o be_v puff_v up_o in_o pride_n ●s_a s._n chrysostome_n and_o after_o he_o theophilactus_fw-la &_o other_o do_v note_n upon_o that_o place_n the_o which_o place_n some_o bold_o allege_v against_o tradition_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a 6._o calu_n in_o
which_o have_v the_o bride_n say_v s._n john_n baptist_n be_v the_o bridegroom_n 19_o joan._n 3._o v._n 19_o and_o the_o apostle_n i_o have_v despouse_v you_o to_o one_o man_n to_o present_v you_o a_o chaste_a virgin_n unto_o christ_n 23._o 2._o cor._n 11._o v._n 2._o apoc_fw-la ult._n v._n 27._o rom._n 12._o v._n 5._o 1._o cor._n 12._o v._n 27._o 1._o ●phes_n 1._o v._n 22._o &_o 23._o last_o s._n joan_n evangelist_n in_o his_o revelation_n say_v the_o bridegroom_n and_o bride_n do_v say_v come_v 4._o the_o second_o be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v many_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n and_o again_o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n of_o member_n and_o in_o another_o place_n and_o he_o have_v make_v he_o to_o wit_n christ_n head_n over_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n 5._o the_o three_o property_n be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n shall_v reign_v over_o they_o say_v the_o prophet_n 7._o mich._n 4._o v._n 7._o micheas_n in_o the_o mountain_n of_o zion_n from_o hence_o now_o and_o evermore_o and_o the_o angel_n as_o witness_v 21._o luc._n 1._o v._n 33._o luc._n 17._o v._n 21._o s._n luke_n speak_v thus_o of_o christ_n he_o shall_v reign_v in_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n for_o ever_o last_o christ_n himself_o say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v within_o you_o 6._o the_o four_o property_n be_v that_o the_o 12._o psal_n ●_o v._o 8._o psal_n 27._o vel_fw-la 28._o v._n ult._n psal_n 32._o vel_fw-la 3●_n v._o 12._o church_n be_v the_o inheritance_n of_o christ_n ask_v of_o i_o say_v god_n the_o father_n unto_o his_o son_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o all_o nation_n for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o again_o the_o prophet_n david_n say_v save_o thy_o people_n o_o lord_n and_o bless_v thy_o inheritance_n and_o last_o bless_a be_v that_o nation_n who_o lord_n be_v god_n thereof_o a_o people_n who_o god_n have_v choose_v for_o his_o inheritance_n 7._o the_o five_o property_n be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o city_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n glorious_a thing_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n 26._o psal_n 86._o vel_fw-la 87._o v._n 3._o psal_n 45._o ve●_n 46_o v._n 5._o matth._n 5._o five_o 14._o hebr._n 12._o v._o 22._o 2._o cor._n 6._o v._n 16._o 1._o tim._n 3._o v._n 15._o gal._n 4._o v._n 26._o say_v the_o proper_a david_n and_o again_o the_o main_n stream_n of_o the_o river_n do_v consort_v the_o city_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n himself_o say_v a_o city_n place_v upon_o a_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n and_o zion_n as_o also_o the_o temple_n &_o house_n of_o god_n you_o be_v come_v say_v the_o apostle_n to_o mount_v zion_n and_o the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n heavenly_a jerusalem_n and_o in_o another_o place_n you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o live_a god_n last_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o converse_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n 8._o but_o now_o the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n be_v many_o the_o which_o may_v be_v reduce_v to_o five_o head_n for_o the_o church_n as_o witness_v the_o apostle_n be_v our_o mother_n 9_o a_o mother_n exercise_v five_o office_n towards_o her_o child_n first_o she_o conceyve_v they_o second_o she_o bring_v they_o forth_o three_o she_o nourish_v they_o four_o she_o govern_v they_o five_o she_o defend_v and_o preserve_v they_o from_o all_o danger_n till_o they_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n all_o these_o thing_n the_o church_n perform_v unto_o we_o until_o we_o meet_v all_o with_o christ_n the_o spouse_n of_o the_o 13._o ephes_n 4._o v._n 13._o church_n and_o our_o father_n into_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n into_o a_o perfect_a man_n into_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 10._o the_o first_o office_n therefore_o of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o propound_v unto_o all_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o full_o as_o concern_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n sincere_o clear_o and_o without_o any_o error_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o incorruptible_a seed_n whereby_o we_o be_v conceyve_v and_o bear_v again_o as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v testify_v but_o the_o church_n perform_v this_o both_o by_o word_n and_o writing_n while_o she_o convert_v gentile_n mahumets_n heretic_n and_o atheist_n and_o christ_n enjoin_v this_o office_n unto_o the_o church_n in_o those_o 15._o marc._n ult._n v._n 15._o word_n preach_v you_o the_o gospel_n unto_o every_o creature_n 11._o the_o second_o office_n of_o the_o church_n 14._o ad_fw-la titū_n ult._n v._n 5._o &_o joan._n 6._o v._n 57_o &_o 58._o matt._n ult._n v._n 19_o marc._n ult._n v._n 16._o &_o luc._n 22_o v._n 19_o 1._o cor._n 3._o v._n 2._o &_o hebr_n 5._o v._n 12._o &_o 14._o be_v lawful_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n for_o by_o these_o also_o we_o be_v regenerate_v and_o nourish_v strengthen_v govern_v and_o defend_v this_o office_n also_o christ_n enjoin_v unto_o his_o church_n when_o he_o command_v she_o to_o baptize_v &_o administer_v the_o other_o sacrament_n 12._o the_o three_o office_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o feed_v those_o who_o be_v bear_v to_o christ_n not_o only_o by_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n feed_v say_v s._n peter_n the_o flock_n of_o god_n which_o be_v among_o you_o but_o the_o church_n feed_v the_o weak_a and_o rude_a sort_n of_o people_n with_o milk_n and_o not_o with_o strong_a meat_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o catholic_a catechism_n be_v teach_v so_o much_o in_o the_o church_n but_o yet_o she_o nourish_v those_o which_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n with_o solid_a meat_n and_o not_o only_o with_o milk_n 13._o the_o four_o office_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o govern_v according_a to_o those_o word_n 28._o act._n 20._o v._n 28._o of_o s._n paul_n take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a flock_n wherein_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v place_v you_o bishop_n to_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o god_n hence_o it_o ensue_v that_o there_o have_v be_v so_o many_o assembly_n and_o counsel_n call_v together_o that_o heresye_n may_v be_v condemn_v manner_n reform_v and_o ecclesiastical_a order_n well_o establish_v in_o all_o thing_n also_o that_o for_o this_o office_n there_o be_v choose_v preacher_n pastor_n administrator_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v ordain_v which_o do_v concern_v the_o right_a government_n of_o the_o church_n 14._o the_o five_o office_n of_o the_o church_n ult._n matth._n 10._o v._n 32._o &_o 33._o geres_n 5._o v._n 15._o isa_n 54._o v._n ult._n be_v to_o defend_v her_o child_n for_o this_o cause_n she_o oppose_v herself_o against_o the_o adversary_n of_o christ_n she_o profess_v public_o her_o faith_n she_o fight_v continual_o with_o the_o serpent_n and_o his_o seed_n she_o suffer_v much_o &_o yet_o always_o get_v the_o victory_n no_o weapon_n say_v the_o prophet_n isay_n that_o be_v make_v against_o thou_o shall_v proceed_v or_o level_a right_n and_o 18._o matth._n 16._o v._n 18._o christ_n say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n &_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o in_o another_o place_n you_o shall_v suffer_v trouble_n and_o ult._n joan._n 16._o v._o ult._n pressure_n in_o this_o world_n but_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n by_o these_o property_n and_o office_n of_o the_o church_n if_o they_o be_v well_o consider_v all_o the_o error_n of_o our_o adversary_n may_v easy_o be_v confute_v as_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v will_v manifest_o appear_v chap._n ii_o that_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n the_o first_o error_n be_v of_o certain_a sectary_n of_o this_o time_n who_o promise_v man_n salvation_n out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o error_n be_v easy_o refute_v by_o the_o scripture_n for_o that_o be_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a which_o isay_n the_o prophet_n say_v speak_v unto_o the_o church_n in_o the_o person_n or_o name_n of_o god_n that_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n 12._o isa_n 60._o v._n 12._o say_v he_o which_o have_v not_o serve_v thou_o shall_v perish_v 2._o the_o same_o also_o to_o be_v a_o error_n be_v convince_v by_o the_o property_n and_o office_n of_o the_o church_n before_o allege_v for_o first_o 32._o e●hes_n 5._o v._n 1._o
amos_n and_o micheas_n moreover_o in_o the_o time_n of_o jeremy_n there_o live_v ●he_v good_a king_n josias_n and_o the_o good_a prophet_n ezechiel_n daniel_n and_o sophonias_n therefore_o those_o thing_n which_o isay_n and_o hiere●y_n do_v say_v can_v be_v understand_v of_o all_o universal_o 5._o the_o other_o place_n which_o our_o adversary_n incentium_fw-la s._n aug._n tom._n 2._o epist_n 48._o ad_fw-la five_o incentium_fw-la allege_v do_v prove_v that_o there_o a●●_n at_o sometime_o but_o a_o few_o in_o the_o church_n ●_o but_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o say●_n church_n be_v invisible_a yea_o as_o s._n aug●stine_n dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n we●_n observe_v when_o the_o church_n of_o god_n ●_o most_o vex_v with_o the_o persecution_n of_o th●_n wicked_a and_o seem_v to_o be_v almost_o oppress_v see_v therewith_o then_o be_v she_o most_o divine_a i●_n such_o her_o member_n as_o be_v renew_v for_o courage_n and_o constancy_n for_o faith_n and_o obedience_n ●8_o mat._n 1._o v._o ●8_o towards_o god_n be_v more_o eminent_a i●_n one_o noë_n or_o abraham_n then_o in_o ten_o thousand_o other_o 6._o last_o this_o our_o disputation_n be_v not_o proper_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o w●_n 2._o eusebius_n in_o cron._n orosi●●_n in_o hist_o gen●b_n in_o sva_fw-la cono._n sand._n the_o visib_n monar_n ch_z l._n 7._o in_o prin_fw-mi coc●iu●_n tom._n 1._o lib_n 8._o art_n 2._o before_o christ_n time_n but_o of_o that_o whi●_n ensue_v the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n till_o this_o our_o present_a age_n whereof_o chri●_n say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n ●_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o f●_n albeit_o the_o church_n have_v be_v always_o visible_a even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o wor●_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n as_o paulus_n orosi●_n &_o eus●bius_n have_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o every_o age_n declare_v in_o this_o our_o age_n al●_n genebrard_n sanders_n and_o coccius_n have_v brief_n demonstrate_v the_o same_o yet_o notwithstanding_o before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n t●_n whole_a church_n of_o god_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n ult._n psal_n 75._o v._n 2._o &_o psal_n 147._o v._n ult._n conclude_v into_o great_a strait_n of_o person_n and_o place_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n david_n god_n be_v know_v in_o jury_n &_o again_o he_o have_v not_o do_v thus_o to_o every_o nation_n and_o he_o have_v not_o manifest_v or_o make_v know_v his_o judgement_n unto_o they_o but_o among_o the_o gentile_n there_o be_v but_o few_o who_o acknowledge_v and_o right_o worship_v god_n wherefore_o the_o true_a church_n be_v often_o reduce_v unto_o a_o few_o person_n in_o number_n but_o incent_n s._n aug._n tom._n 2._o epist_n 84._o ad_fw-la five_o incent_n notwithstanding_o ever_o visible_a &_o those_o very_a eminent_a in_o sanctity_n and_o holiness_n as_o be_v declare_v by_o s_n augustin_n word_n already_o allege_v but_o the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v far_o different_a after_o the_o 18._o genes_n 22._o v._n 18._o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o that_o other_o for_o now_o that_o bless_a seed_n of_o abraham_n be_v come_v wherein_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v to_o be_v bless_v now_o those_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n inheritance_n and_o kingdom_n be_v fullfil_v 8._o psal_n 2._o v._n 8._o ask_v of_o i_o &_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o all_o nation_n for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n for_o thy_o 8._o psal_n 71._o v._n 8._o possession_n also_o he_o shall_v govern_v and_o reign_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o gyver_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o again_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n ●●all_v adore_v he_o and_o all_o nation_n shall_v serve_v he_o moreover_o our_o lord_n have_v prepare_v his_o holy_a arm_n 10._o ibid._n v._o 1●_n isa_n 52._o v._n 10._o ●●_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o all_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o ●rth_n shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o god_n when_o s._n augustine_n have_v allege_v this_o place_n among_o other_o against_o the_o donatist_n admire_v their_o great_a madness_n and_o ignorance_n who_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v either_o invisible_a or_o to_o lie_v lurk_v in_o some_o odd_a place_n only_o break_v forth_o into_o these_o most_o true_a 7._o s._n aug._n to●_n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles_n c._n 7._o word_n worthy_a of_o so_o great_a a_o doctor_n who_o be_v say_v he_o so_o deaf_a who_o be_v so_o mad_a and_o who_o so_o foolish_a to_o contradict_v these_o so_o clear_a &_o evident_a testimony_n but_o he_o which_o know_v not_o what_o he_o speak_v and_o true_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v far_o more_o know_v and_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n after_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n than_o it_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v but_o 18._o rom._n 10._o v._n 18._o i_o say_v have_v they_o not_o hear_v and_o ●●●tes_v into_o all_o earth_n have_v the_o sound_n of_o they_o go_v forth_o and_o unto_o the_o ●8_o rom_n 1._o v._o ●8_o end_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o word_n of_o they_o and_o again_o speak_v unto_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o say_v i_o give_v thanks_n to_o my_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n for_o all_o of_o you_o because_o your_o say_v be_v renew_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n 7._o moreover_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o this_o our_o present_a age_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v not_o only_o visible_a but_o also_o spread_v abroad_o know_v and_o most_o famous_a throughout_o diverse_a kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n as_o many_o historiographer_n aswell_o ecclesiastical_a as_o profane_a do_v testify_v and_o the_o worthy_a cardinal_n c●sar_n bar●●ius_n have_v evident_o declare_v and_o that_o not_o only_o throughout_o all_o age_n but_o also_o every_o 7._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la ecc._n cap._n 7._o year_n in_o so_o much_o that_o those_o who_o do_v not_o consent_v and_o agree_v hereunto_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v account_v infidel_n but_o as_o s._n augustine_n speak_v very_o fit_o and_o true_o man_n out_o of_o their_o wit_n chap._n vi_o diverse_a other_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v confute_v the_o three_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n whereby_o they_o impugn_v the_o visible_a church_n be_v this_o the_o holy_a scripture_n compare_v the_o church_n to_o the_o moon_n but_o the_o moon_n do_v often_o time_n not_o appear_v as_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o new_a moon_n and_o in_o the_o eclipse_n i_o answer_v that_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v for_o a_o similitude_n or_o likeness_n in_o all_o thing_n betwixt_o the_o church_n and_o the_o moon_n for_o otherwise_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v neither_o see_v not_o understand_v nor_o believe_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v altogether_o without_o life_n as_o the_o moon_n be_v but_o in_o this_o matter_n that_o similitude_n or_o likeness_n betwixt_o the_o church_n and_o the_o moon_n be_v only_o to_o be_v seek_v out_o in_o which_o the_o scripture_n compare_v the_o church_n to_o the_o moon_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o compare_v the_o church_n to_o the_o moon_n as_o she_o be_v a_o mutable_a planet_n but_o as_o she_o be_v beautiful_a in_o herself_o beautiful_a say_v 9_o cant._n 6._o v._n 9_o solomon_n be_v the_o moon_n but_o in_o mutuability_n the_o scripture_n compare_v a_o fool_n to_o the_o moon_n but_o not_o the_o church_n a_o fool_n say_v the_o 12._o eccl._n 27._o v._o 12._o wiseman_n be_v change_v as_o the_o moon_n moreover_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o compare_v to_o every_o moon_n but_o only_o to_o the_o moon_n 26._o isa_n 60._o v._n 26._o when_o she_o be_v in_o her_o fullness_n &_o perfection_n yea_o to_o the_o moon_n which_o be_v never_o diminish_v nor_o fail_v hence_o be_v those_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n isay_n which_o caluin_n acknowledge_v verba_fw-la cal._n in_o illa_fw-la verba_fw-la be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o church_n thy_o sun_n shall_v nevermore_o be_v set_v and_o thy_o moon_n shall_v not_o be_v diminish_v or_o as_o caluin_n translate_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v hide_v last_o s._n john_n say_v that_o the_o moon_n be_v under_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o church_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o wit_n christ_n himself_o where_o withal_o she_o be_v whole_o invest_v and_o 1._o apo._n 12._o v._n 1._o adorn_v be_v free_a from_o all_o mutability_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 2._o the_o four_o argument_n these_o thing_n which_o we_o
believe_v by_o faith_n be_v invisible_a but_o by_o faith_n we_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o catholic_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o apostle_n creed_n therefore_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v invisible_a and_o not_o visible_a i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o weak_a argument_n albeit_o prin●_n calu._n l._n 4._o ●nstit_fw-la c._n ●_o sect_n 1._o in_o prin●_n caluin_n also_o use_v it_o for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o it_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v also_o invisible_a because_o we_o believe_v also_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o faith_n yea_o it_o will_v also_o prove_v even_o our_o adversary_n church_n to_o be_v as_o yet_o invisible_a for_o they_o as_o yet_o believe_v their_o church_n by_o faith_n and_o yet_o they_o confess_v that_o their_o church_n be_v now_o visible_a and_o true_o if_o their_o church_n have_v remain_v still_o invisible_a they_o have_v never_o cause_v so_o many_o tumult_n in_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n but_o certain_o even_o as_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o see_v one_o thing_n and_o believe_v another_o we_o see_v the_o letter_n &_o character_n the_o which_o the_o infidel_n also_o see_v but_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v most_o true_a in_o all_o thing_n the_o which_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v so_o we_o s●_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v extant_a the_o which_o also_o the_o infidel_n do_v see_v for_o turk_n &_o jew_n do_v very_o well_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o pope_n and_o that_o there_o be_v bishop_n prince_n and_o christian_a nation_n but_o we_o believe_v that_o this_o church_n which_o we_o see_v be_v a_o holy_a church_n be_v govern_v &_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o she_o can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n all_o which_o the_o infidel_n do_v not_o believe_v 3._o the_o five_o argument_n none_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o by_o faith_n but_o faith_n be_v invisible_a therefore_o the_o church_n also_o be_v invisible_a i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a consequence_n for_o otherwise_o we_o may_v reason_v thus_o none_o be_v man_n but_o by_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n but_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n endue_v with_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n be_v invisible_a therefore_o the_o whole_a man_n also_o be_v invisible_a also_o no_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v accounetd_v holy_a but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n but_o this_o authority_n be_v invisible_a therefore_o the_o scripture_n also_o be_v invisible_a for_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v call_v visible_a that_o the_o chief_a part_n or_o reason_n thereof_o be_v visible_a but_o it_o suffici_v if_o any_o part_n thereof_o be_v visible_a as_o manifest_o appear_v in_o all_o visible_a substance_n for_o their_o chief_a part_n to_o wit_n their_o substantial_a matter_n and_o form_n be_v thing_n invisible_a 4._o second_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o faith_n whereby_o a_o man_n be_v make_v a_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v not_o only_o a_o interior_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v but_o that_o which_o be_v evident_o see_v and_o declare_v by_o exterior_a sign_n as_o for_o example_n by_o confess_v public_o the_o say_a faith_n by_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o such_o other_o exterior_a act_n the_o which_o be_v so_o true_a that_o this_o exterior_a profession_n of_o our_o faith_n only_o without_o the_o interior_a faith_n suffice_v that_o a_o man_n become_v a_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o bellarmine_n well_o prove_v ●0_n bell._n l._n 3._o de_fw-la milit_fw-la eccl._n c._n ●0_n see_v that_o otherwise_o none_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o his_o prelate_n or_o pastor_n because_o none_o can_v see_v the_o faith_n or_o mind_n o●_n another_o 5._o hence_o also_o it_o be_v that_o not_o only_o the_o predestinate_a and_o just_a man_n be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o also_o such_o as_o be_v hypocrite_n and_o wicked_a man_n who_o profess_v their_o faith_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o 6._o joan._n ●●_o v._o 2._o ibid._n v._o 6._o christ_n every_o branch_n in_o i_o not_o bear_v fruit_n he_o will_v take_v it_o away_o and_o if_o any_o abide_v not_o in_o i_o he_o shall_v be_v cast_v forth_o by_o which_o word_n christ_n show_v that_o they_o also_o who_o do_v not_o remain_v in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o which_o be_v not_o predestinate_a and_o those_o which_o do_v not_o bring_v forth_o any_o fruit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v bad_a christian_n be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o his_o visible_a body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n the_o which_o also_o almost_o all_o our_o adversary_n confess_v as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o and_o bellarmine_n prove_v more_o at_o large_a 6._o the_o sixth_o argument_n our_o adversary_n 14._o apoc._n 12_o v._o ●_o 14._o deduce_v out_o of_o the_o apocalyps_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o woman_n ●●uested_v with_o the_o sun_n which_o signify_v the_o true_a church_n flee_v into_o the_o desert_n and_o remain_v there_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 1260._o day_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o our_o adversary_n interpret_v it_o a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n out_o of_o which_o they_o infer_v that_o the_o church_n remain_v invisible_a as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n these_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n last_o pass_v i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o vicious_a argument_n for_o many_o reason_n for_o first_o it_o be_v very_o absurd_a to_o think_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n do_v lie_v hide_a and_o invisible_a these_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o sixty_o year_n past_a for_o thereupon_o it_o will_v ensue_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v invisible_a then_o when_o it_o most_o flourish_v &_o be_v spread_v abroad_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o for_o example_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n ambrose_n hilary_n athanasius_n hierome_n chrysostome_n cyril_n etc._n etc._n yea_o in_o the_o time_n also_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n the_o which_o our_o adversary_n 6._o confess_v rupell_v art_n 6._o themselves_o do_v admit_v in_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n for_o all_o these_o father_n and_o ancient_a counsel_n have_v be_v within_o the_o space_n of_o the_o foresaid_a thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n the_o which_o our_o adversary_n do_v account_n from_o pope_n silvester_n till_o luther_n time_n wherefore_o this_o place_n of_o the_o apo●●lyps_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o year_n but_o literal_o of_o day_n only_o 7._o moreover_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o by_o this_o word_n desert_n be_v understand_v any_o solitary_a place_n or_o such_o as_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o the_o society_n or_o comfort_n of_o man_n for_o primasius_n s._n apoc._n prima_fw-la in_o cap._n 12._o apoc._n augustine_n scholar_n say_v that_o by_o the_o foresay_a word_n be_v signify_v the_o whole_a world_n the_o which_o also_o that_o desert_n signify_v through_o the_o which_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 34._o numer_n 14._o v._n 34._o pass_v before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n even_o as_o by_o the_o say_a land_n of_o promise_n be_v also_o signify_v the_o everlasting_a life_n some_o other_o will_v have_v the_o foresay_a word_n desert_n to_o signfy_v a_o departure_n or_o forsake_v of_o all_o sin_n and_o vice_n and_o all_o other_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n osee_n i_o will_v carry_v and_o lead_v she_o into_o the_o desert_n and_o i_o will_v speak_v unto_o 8._o osee_n v._o 14._o psal_n 54._o v._n 8._o her_o hart_n and_o that_o of_o david_n behold_v fly_v away_o i_o go_v far_o off_o and_o i_o remain_v in_o the_o desert_n 8._o last_o albeit_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o this_o desert_n be_v some_o wild_a or_o forsake_a place_n yet_o nevertheless_o it_o can_v not_o be_v gather_v thereby_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n either_o be_v or_o ever_o shall_v be_v invisible_a for_o neither_o this_o woman_n which_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n signify_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o some_o one_o famous_a church_n the_o which_o antichrist_n shall_v persecure_v most_o of_o all_o because_o it_o will_v strong_o oppose_v itself_o against_o his_o impiety_n and_o wickedness_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o foresaid_a vision_n s._n john_n plain_o affirm_v that_o the_o dragon_n 17._o apoc._n ●2_n v._o 17._o after_o the_o delivery_n of_o that_o woman_n shall_v make_v war_n against_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o seed_n who_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o beside_o that_o woman_n there_o will_v be_v some_o out_n of_o the_o desert_n who_o will_v public_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n against_o who_o for_o that_o cause_n the_o dragon_n will_v fight_v 9_o but_o that_o we_o may_v now_o conclude_v
this_o controversy_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n see_v that_o christ_n our_o lord_n come_v into_o this_o world_n that_o he_o may_v make_v open_a and_o know_v the_o way_n to_o eternal_a savation_n not_o to_o one_o nation_n or_o age_n only_o but_o indeed_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o all_o posterity_n it_o be_v a_o very_a absurd_a thing_n to_o think_v that_o this_o one_o only_a way_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n remain_v hide_v and_o unknowen_a to_o all_o nation_n for_o so_o many_o age_n past_a chap._n vii_o that_o this_o visible_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n nothing_o can_v be_v say_v more_o absurd_o they_o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o the_o sectary_n of_o this_o time_n do_v hold_v and_o defend_v with_o great_a pertinacy_n not_o without_o just_a cause_n for_o they_o see_v very_o well_o that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v for_o these_o many_o year_n past_a remain_v still_o among_o catholic_n only_a visible_a as_o afterward_o we_o shall_v more_o clear_o declare_v but_o if_o they_o shall_v also_o grant_v that_o this_o visible_a church_n can_v err_v they_o shall_v overthow_v themselves_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n wherefore_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v still_o have_v some_o corner_n or_o hole_n to_o slip_v out_o at_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n both_o have_v err_v &_o still_o do_v err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n then_o the_o which_o nothing_o certain_o be_v more_o absurd_a especial_o see_v that_o they_o affirm_v that_o it_o have_v err_v not_o in_o thing_n of_o small_a moment_n but_o in_o the_o principal_a and_o chief_a point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v plain_o necesrary_a to_o eternal_a salvation_n yea_o also_o that_o it_o have_v fall_v into_o manifest_a idolatry_n moreover_o that_o it_o have_v not_o only_o fail_v &_o stagger_v in_o faith_n &_o have_v public_o teach_v many_o error_n against_o faith_n but_o have_v also_o compel_v and_o force_v by_o threat_n and_o torment_n all_o to_o idolatry_n and_o last_o that_o it_o have_v do_v thus_o not_o only_o for_o the_o space_n of_o one_o year_n but_o for_o a_o thousand_o or_o at_o least_o 900._o year_n all_o which_o how_o absurd_a they_o be_v we_o will_v now_o declare_v 2._o but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o which_o we_o be_v to_o say_v hereafter_o of_o this_o matter_n may_v be_v the_o better_o understand_v we_o must_v note_v here_o that_o when_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n that_o by_o this_o word_n faith_n we_o understand_v not_o only_o that_o invisible_a faith_n which_o be_v in_o our_o mind_n but_o also_o visible_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o public_a doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o be_v propose_v or_o set_v down_o to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o wherefore_o when_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o affirm_v also_o that_o the_o doctrine_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n set_v down_o as_o the_o most_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n can_v be_v false_a but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n itself_o which_o i_o will_v clear_o declare_v by_o these_o argument_n 2._o the_o first_o argument_n be_v deduce_v out_o 1._o supr_fw-la h●_n ipsa_fw-la contro_fw-la c._n 1._o of_o all_o those_o property_n and_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n before_o allege_v out_o of_o scripture_n for_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v once_o take_v away_o all_o the_o foresay_a property_n of_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o perish_v and_o all_o her_o office_n must_v cease_v for_o the_o church_n can_v neither_o be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n nor_o the_o bod●_n nor_o the_o kingdom_n nor_o the_o inheritance_n nor_o the_o temple_n of_o christ_n without_o faith_n but_o neither_o can_v the_o church_n without_o faith_n &_o the_o true_a doctrine_n thereof_o either_o conceyve_v bring_v forth_o nourish_v govern_v or_o defend_v christ_n flock_n and_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o so_o many_o age_n have_v lose_v contro_fw-la supr_fw-la c._n 1._o h●ius_fw-la contro_fw-la all_o her_o property_n &_o have_v intermit_v all_o her_o proper_a office_n contrary_a to_o so_o many_o &_o so_o clear_a promise_n of_o holy_a write_v before_o allege_v 4._o the_o second_o argument_n be_v deduce_v out_o of_o most_o clear_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n for_o first_o christ_n himself_o 18._o v._o at_o 16._o v._n 18._o affirm_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n but_o if_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n for_o so_o many_o age_n past_a have_v prevail_v against_o she_o 5._o moreover_o god_n speak_v thus_o by_o ul●_n isa_n 59_o v._o ul●_n his_o prophet_n isay_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o be_v my_o league_n with_o they_o say_v our_o lord_n my_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o departout_fw-fr of_o thy_o mouth_n &_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n &_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n seed_n satthour_n lord_n from_o hence_o forth_o even_o to_o the_o world_n end_n but_o in_o our_o adversary_n opinion_n the_o word_n which_o god_n have_v put_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n have_v depart_v many_o age_n out_o of_o her_o mouth_n 6._o last_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o stability_n of_o truth_n 9_o ●_o tim._n 1._o v._n 9_o but_o if_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n and_o teach_v public_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o pillar_n rather_o of_o falsehood_n then_o of_o truth_n some_o of_o our_o adversary_n do_v answer_v unto_o this_o place_n that_o the_o church_n be_v call_v indeed_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n because_o it_o do_v not_o err_v when_o it_o follow_v and_o be_v agreeable_a unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o nevertheless_o it_o err_v when_o it_o disagree_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v a_o very_a frivolous_a answer_n for_o according_a unto_o this_o interpretation_n every_o church_n of_o heretic_n of_o jew_n turk_n yea_o of_o the_o devil_n themselves_o shall_v be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n for_o none_o of_o these_o err_v when_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o a_o pillar_n be_v that_o which_o necessary_o and_o always_o uphold_v that_o which_o it_o strengthen_v and_o who_o pillar_n it_o be_v wherefore_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n unless_o it_o always_o stick_v and_o be_v join_v with_o the_o truth_n and_o uphould_v it_o caluin_n therefore_o fine_a calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 2._o sect_n 1._o in_o fine_a convince_v by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n write_v that_o if_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o kingdom_n where_o lie_n &_o falsehood_n rargn_v can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n thus_o caluin_n 7._o the_o three_o argument_n be_v deduce_v out_o of_o diverse_a absurdity_n which_o ensue_v out_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o first_o absurdity_n be_v that_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v false_a wherein_o we_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n for_o that_o church_n can_v be_v holy_a which_o want_v the_o true_a faith_n which_o reach_v falsity_n and_o wickedness_n which_o force_v all_o man_n to_o idolatry_n 8._o the_o second_o absurdity_n be_v that_o christ_n himself_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v err_v and_o teach_v thing_n both_o false_a and_o wicked_a for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o so_o 28._o luc._n 10._o v._n 16._o joan._n 14._o v._n 26._o act._n 15._o v._n 28._o much_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v of_o christ_n &_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o hear_v the_o you_o say_v christ_n hear_v i_o and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o paraclete_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o my_o father_n will_v send_v you_o in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n and_o t●e_v apostle_n say_v it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a g●ost_n and_o to_o us._n last_o god_n himself_o by_o his_o prophet_n speak_v unto_o the_o church_n affirm_v that_o his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o have_v put_v his_o word_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v take_v out_o of_o her_o mouth_n from_o hence_o forth_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o if_o
add_v also_o some_o other_o natural_a reason_n and_o perwasion_n that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v for_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o holy_a scripture_n which_o seem_v opposite_a to_o natural_a reason_n as_o the_o mysterye_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n incarnation_n &_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n 9_o nine_o there_o want_v last_o of_o all_o the_o ten_o property_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o extant_a of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n 10._o the_o holy_a scripture_n indeed_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o reason_n why_o we_o believe_v many_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o not_o the_o ground_n why_o we_o believe_v all_o moreover_o neither_o be_v it_o the_o first_o ground_n of_o all_o that_o we_o believe_v by_o it_o for_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v prove_v by_o some_o other_o more_o general_a ground_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v only_o a_o particular_a ground_n and_o not_o a_o general_a a_o mediate_a and_o not_o immediate_a a_o secondary_a and_o not_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a rule_n of_o faith_n chap._n four_o that_o the_o private_a or_o particular_a spirit_n of_o every_o one_o be_v not_o the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o faith_n that_o no_o private_a spirit_n of_o any_o can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v far_o more_o evident_a by_o the_o same_o property_n now_o allege_v for_o none_o of_o these_o ten_o property_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v the_o which_o we_o declare_v by_o these_o argument_n 1._o first_o there_o want_v the_o foresay_a continuance_n for_o there_o be_v no_o private_a or_o particular_a person_n who_o have_v continue_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n or_o shall_v endure_v till_o the_o end_n thereof_o as_o faith_n have_v continue_v 2._o second_o there_o want_v truth_n because_o there_o be_v no_o private_a man_n to_o be_v find_v which_o can_v err_v and_o be_v deceive_v for_o as_o witness_v the_o apostle_n every_o man_n be_v 4._o rom._n 3._o v._n 4._o a_o liar_n 3._o three_o there_o want_v certainty_n in_o propose_v matter_n of_o faith_n unto_o we_o because_o none_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o any_o private_a person_n can_v have_v such_o a_o spirit_n yea_o even_o in_o our_o adversary_n judgement_n for_o the_o predestinate_a only_o in_o their_o opinion_n have_v this_o spirit_n even_o as_o they_o only_o in_o their_o judgment_n have_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o the_o predestinate_a be_v know_v to_o none_o but_o only_o to_o god_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n god_n know_v who_o be_v he_o the_o which_o caluin_n 2._o 2._o tim._n 2_o v._n 19_o cal._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 1._o sect_n 2._o express_o teach_v 4._o four_o the_o foresay_a strength_n and_o immutability_n be_v want_v for_o that_o a_o private_a man_n have_v not_o that_o strength_n and_o immutability_n of_o his_o doctrine_n our_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v and_o experience_n teach_v we_o that_o they_o often_o time_n change_v their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o at_o diverse_a time_n they_o teach_v plain_a contrary_n yea_o they_o confess_v that_o this_o their_o private_a spirit_n be_v not_o permanent_a with_o they_o but_o often_o time_n leave_v and_o forsake_v they_o the_o which_o they_o prove_v out_o of_o that_o place_n of_o the_o 29._o or_o 30._o psalm_n the_o eight_o verse_n thou_o have_v turn_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o and_o i_o become_v finem_fw-la with_fw-mi disp_n paris_n a_o 1566._o in_o disp_n 1._o di●i_fw-la sub_fw-la finem_fw-la trouble_v for_o thus_o they_o affirm_v in_o that_o famous_a disputation_n have_v at_o paris_n anno_fw-la 1566._o 5._o five_o there_o want_v that_o fullness_n &_o sufficiency_n because_o no_o private_a man_n can_v define_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n see_v that_o many_o be_v define_v before_o he_o be_v bear_v against_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n and_o there_o will_v be_v many_o thing_n define_v in_o the_o church_n after_o his_o death_n assoon_o as_o there_o shall_v arise_v any_o new_a heresy_n 6._o six_o there_o want_v necessity_n for_o before_o there_o be_v any_o private_a man_n which_o now_o live_v there_o be_v true_a faith_n and_o the_o same_o faith_n will_v continue_v after_o he_o be_v dead_a 7._o seaventh_o there_o want_v the_o seven_o property_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n see_v that_o by_o this_o private_a spirit_n a_o christian_a can_v be_v distinguish_v from_o a_o infidel_n but_o in_o truth_n all_o heretic_n do_v brag_v and_o boast_v that_o they_o have_v this_o private_a spirit_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o one_o condemn_v or_o rather_o damn_v another_o 8._o eight_o there_o want_v the_o eight_o property_n for_o no_o point_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v certain_o deduce_v out_o of_o this_o private_a spirit_n only_o see_v that_o it_o be_v oftentimes_o uncertain_a and_o deceitful_a 9_o nine_o there_o want_v the_o nine_o property_n for_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a thing_n for_o one_o to_o endeavour_v to_o convert_v a_o infidel_n to_o the_o faith_n by_o brag_v only_o that_o he_o have_v this_o private_a spirit_n the_o which_o none_o can_v either_o see_v or_o understand_v 10._o ten_o there_o want_v the_o ten_o and_o last_o property_n because_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o this_o private_a and_o particular_a spirit_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n 11._o and_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o every_o faithful_a soul_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v that_o we_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o say_v be_v not_o the_o 13._o 2._o cor._n 4._o v._n 13._o ground_n or_o reason_n of_o faith_n we_o here_o speak_v of_o but_o it_o be_v the_o help_n of_o god_n or_o the_o supernatural_a gift_n of_o faith_n whereby_o our_o understanding_n be_v help_v to_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o our_o understanding_n as_o it_o be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n but_o we_o speak_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o formal_a cause_n or_o reason_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o which_o we_o know_v what_o be_v the_o true_a reveal_v word_n of_o god_n and_o what_o be_v not_o for_o albeit_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n move_v we_o to_o believe_v yet_o they_o do_v not_o rash_o move_v we_o without_o any_o reason_n or_o ground_n 4._o eccles_n 19_o v._n 4._o for_o he_o as_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v who_o believe_v quick_o be_v light_n of_o hart_n but_o with_o a_o solid_a and_o sure_a ground_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o 1._o 1._o joan._n 4._o v._n 1._o s._n john_n do_v not_o dear_o belove_v believe_v every_o spirit_n but_o prove_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n but_o this_o proof_n and_o trial_n necessary_o require_v some_o good_a reason_n and_o sure_a ground_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n 12._o last_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o we_o do_v here_o dis●ute_v of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o all_o to_o attain_v their_o eternal_a salvation_n &_o not_o of_o the_o special_a faith_n of_o one_o or_o other_o the_o which_o we_o know_v very_o well_o may_v arise_v or_o proceed_v from_o some_o particular_a or_o extraordinary_a revelation_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a faith_n not_o a_o ordinary_a but_o a_o extraordinary_a faith_n not_o to_o be_v admit_v general_o of_o all_o till_o it_o be_v approve_v and_o receyve_v by_o the_o church_n as_o present_o we_o will_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a chap._n v._o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o catholic_a and_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o most_o solid_a and_o true_a ground_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v manifest_o prove_v by_o the_o former_a property_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n for_o all_o those_o ten_o property_n do_v very_o well_o agree_v to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o nothing_o else_o beside_o the_o church_n have_v the_o first_o property_n to_o wit_n a_o continual_a and_o never-interrupted_n controu_n sup●_n cap._n 3._o huius_fw-la controu_n duration_n for_o the_o church_n have_v always_o continue_v as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v even_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o adversary_n 2._o the_o church_n also_o have_v the_o second_o property_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o most_o certain_a controu_n supr_fw-la cap._n 7._o huius_fw-la controu_n and_o undoubted_a truth_n because_o she_o can_v never_o err_v in_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o 3._o she_o have_v also_o the_o three_o property_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o infallible_a certainty_n on_o our_o part_n because_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n we_o may_v have_v the_o great_a certainty_n perspicuity_n and_o evidency_n that_o possible_o we_o can_v
desire_v see_v that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o present_a who_o explicate_v always_o her_o m●nd_n unto_o we_o in_o plain_a and_o manifest_a word_n and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n there_o arise_v any_o doubt_n or_o controversy_n in_o her_o dec●e●s_n she_o present_o declare_v it_o no_o otherwise_o than_o it_o the_o prophet_n &_o other_o writer_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v yet_o alive_a and_o will_v clear_o explicate_v their_o mind_n unto_o we_o in_o their_o own_o proper_a word_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n who_o in_o time_n past_a speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 20._o matt._n 10._o v._n 20._o and_o who_o speak_v now_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n ●or_a it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o father_n that_o speak_v in_o you_o 4._o the_o church_n have_v the_o four_o property_n for_o there_o be_v exceed_o great_a strength_n and_o immutability_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o true_o can_v never_o be_v corrupt_v falsify_v or_o change_v because_o the_o church_n be_v always_o present_a who_o always_o give_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a testimony_n of_o her_o own_o doctrine_n this_o doctrine_n also_o of_o the_o church_n remain_v always_o constant_a and_o immovable_a because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v always_o present_a who_o will_v not_o permit_v the_o church_n to_o err_v according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n i_o will_v 16._o joan._n 14._o v._n 16._o ask_v my_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v remain_v everlasting_o with_o you_o 5._o the_o church_n have_v the_o five_o property_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o fullness_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o doctrine_n for_o the_o church_n teach_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n according_a to_o that_o promise_n of_o christ_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o will_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n so_o that_o the_o 13._o joan._n 16._o v._n 13._o church_n have_v hitherto_o condemn_v all_o heresy_n and_o hereafter_o also_o will_v condemn_v all_o error_n arise_v and_o oppugn_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o like_a manner_n she_o always_o answer_v to_o all_o doubt_n and_o difficulty_n propose_v unto_o she_o because_o she_o be_v always_o present_a and_o always_o live_v 6._o the_o church_n have_v also_o the_o sixth_o property_n that_o be_v to_o say_v necessity_n for_o no_o doctrine_n must_v be_v receyve_v as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n unless_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o approve_v 12._o suprac_n 8._o huius_fw-la controu_n gal._n 1._o v._n 12._o by_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o by_o the_o example_n of_o s._n paul_n who_o although_o he_o receive_v his_o gospel_n immediate_o from_o god_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o christ_n yet_o he_o be_v command_v by_o revelation_n to_o go_v the_o visible_a church_n and_o to_o confer_v the_o gospel_n which_o he_o preach_v with_o those_o who_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n lest_o perhaps_o in_o vain_a he_o shall_v run_v or_o have_v run_v 7._o yea_o and_o other_o can_v not_o safe_o believe_v he_o unless_o his_o doctrine_n have_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o church_n as_o tertulli●n_o s._n hierome_n and_o s._n augustine_n well_o note_v the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n say_v s._n augustine_n call_v from_o heaven_n if_o he_o have_v not_o find_v the_o apostle_n with_o who_o by_o conser_v his_o gospel_n he_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o society_n the_o church_n will_v not_o at_o all_o believe_v he_o thus_o s._n augustine_n and_o much_o more_o the_o ghospell_n of_o s._n mark_v and_o s._n luke_n who_o be_v not_o apostle_n but_o only_o their_o disciple_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o this_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n hereupon_o say_v tertullian_n if_o he_o from_o who_o s._n luke_n receive_v 2._o tertul._n l._n 4._o contra_fw-la marci_n c._n 2._o s._n high_a ep._n 11._o s._n aug._n tom_n 6._o cont_n faustum_n manich._n l._n 28._o c._n 4._o tert._n loco_fw-la cita_fw-la gal._n 2._o v._n 2._o his_o light_n desire_v to_o have_v his_o faith_n and_o preach_v authorize_v by_o his_o predecessor_n how_o much_o more_o reason_n have_v i_o to_o desire_v the_o like_a for_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n luke_n see_v the_o same_o be_v so_o necessary_a for_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o master_n thus_o far_o tertullian_n 8._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n brigit_fw-la and_o s._n catherine_n of_o sienna_n albeit_o they_o be_v true_o reveal_v unto_o they_o by_o god_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n because_o they_o be_v not_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n as_o the_o undoubted_a and_o certain_a word_n of_o god_n 9_o even_o as_o also_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n many_o before_o s._n luke_n write_v the_o act_n of_o christ_n as_o s._n luke_n himself_o testify_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o ghospell_n only_o of_o 1._o luc._n 1._o v._n 1._o two_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n s._n matthew_n and_o s._n mark_n be_v authentical_a for_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o s._n john_n write_v his_o gospel_n long_o after_o s._n luke_n but_o the_o ghospell_n of_o the_o rest_n who_o write_v before_o s._n luke_n do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o faith_n because_o they_o be_v never_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n whereby_o it_o sufficient_o appear_v how_o necessary_a the_o approbation_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 10._o the_o church_n have_v the_o seven_o property_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n for_o by_o the_o church_n and_o her_o conjunction_n &_o communion_n a_o true_a believer_n may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o a_o infidel_n for_o he_o who_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o hear_v she_o be_v a_o true_a believer_n but_o he_o who_o do_v not_o hear_v she_o be_v a_o infidel_n if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o 6._o matt._n 18._o five_o 17._o 1._o joan_n 4._o v._n 6._o church_n say_v our_o lord_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathenor_n publicam_fw-la and_o s._n john_n say_v he_o which_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o he_o which_o be_v not_o of_o god_n do_v not_o hear_v us._n 11._o the_o church_n have_v the_o eight_o property_n for_o whatsoever_o we_o believe_v with_o our_o catholic_a faith_n we_o believe_v it_o because_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o we_o from_o god_n by_o 17._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 9_o sect_n 1._o &_o beza_n c._n 4._o suae_fw-la confess_n sect_n 17._o the_o church_n but_o god_n now_o reveal_v nothing_o to_o every_o member_n of_o the_o church_n immediate_o by_o himself_o yea_o even_o our_o adversary_n do_v well_o admonish_v we_o to_o labour_v most_o of_o all_o that_o no_o way_n or_o leave_v be_v grant_v to_o such_o fantastical_a revelation_n 12._o the_o church_n have_v the_o nine_o property_n for_o the_o church_n convince_v also_o turk_n and_o infidel_n by_o natural_a reason_n of_o which_o sort_n there_o be_v many_o extant_a in_o s._n controu_n s._n thom._n in_o 4_o lib._n contra_fw-la gentes_fw-la insracap_n 19_o huius_fw-la controu_n thomas_n we_o prove_v also_o the_o church_n by_o the_o very_a sign_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v manifest_a unto_o all_o even_o turk_n and_o infidel_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v more_o hereafter_o 12._o the_o church_n have_v also_o the_o ten_o property_n because_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n there_o be_v express_v a_o article_n of_o the_o church_n for_o present_o after_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o true_a god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n first_o of_o all_o be_v set_v down_o this_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n 14._o moreover_o that_o the_o church_n and_o her_o preach_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n evident_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o when_o s._n paul_n dispute_v of_o that_o faith_n whereby_o all_o be_v to_o to_o be_v save_v he_o reduce_v this_o whole_a faith_n to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o church_n &_o unto_o her_o send_n &_o call_v of_o other_o to_o her_o ecclesiastical_a office_n 15._o so_o this_o apostle_n in_o another_o place_n declare_v that_o god_n always_o appoint_v some_o pastor_n seq_fw-la rom._n 10._o five_o 14._o &_o seq_fw-la and_o doctor_n in_o his_o church_n that_o we_o be_v not_o child_n waver_v in_o faith_n and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v stable_n and_o constant_a always_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o confession_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 16._o last_o those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n be_v most_o evident_a wherein_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o 15._o 1._o tim._n 3._o ●_o 15._o truth_n where_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o every_o foundation_n of_o any_o building_n have_v two_o office_n that_o
be_v to_o say_v to_o uphould_v the_o house_n &_o to_o strengthen_v it_o the_o apostle_n here_o attribute_v they_o both_o to_o the_o church_n the_o one_o when_o he_o call_v h●r_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n the_o other_o when_o ●●_o call_v she_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o same_o truth_n for_o the_o pillar_n also_o of_o the_o earth_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n 4._o job._n ●_o v._o 6._o psal_n 74._o vel_fw-la inxta_fw-la hebr●os_fw-la 79._o v._o 4._o phrase_n do_v signify_v the_o low_a foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o god_n be_v say_v to_o shake_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o elsewhere_o to_o strengthen_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o very_a foundation_n thereof_o 17._o these_o so_o manifest_a and_o perspicuous_a 15._o calu._n in●_n ad_fw-la tim._n 3._o v._n 15._o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v compel_v caluin_n at_o the_o last_o to_o be_v of_o our_o opinion_n albeit_o after_o his_o accustom_a manner_n at_o the_o first_o he_o wrongful_o slaunder_v we_o affirm_v that_o catholic_n hold_v or_o to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n do_v blab_v out_o this_o horrible_a blasphemy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v not_o strong_a enough_o unless_o it_o be_v uphoulden_a by_o the_o shoulder_n of_o man_n and_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v uncertain_a till_o by_o humble_a prayer_n as_o it_o be_v it_o borrow_v some_o certaymy_n from_o man_n and_o afterward_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n will_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v support_v by_o the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o that_o which_o he_o say_v first_o be_v a_o mere_a slander_n for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o truth_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n absolute_o and_o consider_v precise_o in_o itself_o receive_v it_o certainty_n and_o strength_n from_o the_o church_n for_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o receyve_v a_o most_o perfect_a strength_n and_o large_a authority_n from_o god_n himself_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n and_o in_o consideration_n of_o our_o knowledge_n it_o receive_v it_o certainty_n from_o the_o church_n fine_a infra_fw-la hac_fw-la controu_n cap._n 16._o in_o fine_a as_o afterward_o we_o will_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a the_o which_o also_o caluin_n in_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v most_o true_a when_o he_o write_v in_o this_o 17._o calu._n loco_fw-la citato_fw-la rom._n 10._o five_o 17._o sort_n s._n paul_n simple_o understand_v say_v caluin_n that_o which_o in_o other_o word_n he_o say_v in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n because_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v there_o will_v be_v no_o faith_n unless_o there_o he_o some_o that_o preach_v therefore_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n the_o church_n support_v the_o truth_n because_o it_o make_v it_o famous_a by_o her_o praise_n and_o commendation_n because_o the_o retain_v it_o in_o sincerity_n and_o purity_n and_o because_o the_o deliver_v and_o sendoth_a it_o to_o her_o posterity_n thus_o caluin_n 18._o but_o that_o which_o second_o he_o add_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v support_v and_o uphold_v by_o the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o church_n be_v indeed_o most_o true_a but_o he_o shall_v have_v consider_v that_o this_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v find_v but_o only_o in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o no_o other_o but_o man_n can_v preach_v the_o pure_a gospel_n wherefore_o if_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v sustain_v by_o the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o necessary_o follow_v also_o that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v sustain_v by_o man_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o gound_z of_o truth_n albeit_o not_o absolute_o yet_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o and_o our_o 15._o beza_n in_o 1._o ad_fw-la tim._n 3._o v._n 15._o knowledge_n so_o as_o beza_n also_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v the_o same_o explicate_v those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n understand_v this_o say_v beza_n not_o simple_o in_o itself_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o us._n thus_o he_o 19_o it_o be_v therefore_o manifest_a as_o well_o out_o of_o caluin_n as_o beza_n that_o the_o church_n in_o regard_n of_o we_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o truth_n or_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o of_o our_o faith_n which_o rely_v thereon_o but_o that_o which_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o true_a ground_n thereof_o because_o our_o faith_n can_v well_o nor_o must_v not_o be_v consider_v but_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n see_v that_o our_o faith_n can_v be_v find_v but_o in_o man_n only_o if_o therefore_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v also_o most_o true_o and_o necessary_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n 20._o furthermore_o that_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v constant_o hold_v the_o preach_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n those_o excellent_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n do_v manifest_o declare_v when_o he_o 3._o s._n aug._n tom._n 6._o contra_fw-la epist_n manich._n cap._n 5._o calu._n l._n 1._o instit_fw-la sect_n 3._o write_v thus_o dispute_v against_o the_o manichee_n ay_o say_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n move_v i_o thereunto_o this_o sentence_n of_o s._n augustine_n vex_v our_o adversary_n very_a much_o caluin_n go_v about_o to_o persuade_v the_o ignorant_a people_n that_o s._n augustin_n speak_v of_o himself_o yet_o remain_v a_o manichean_a heretic_n and_o not_o of_o himself_o as_o be_v convert_v and_o make_v a_o catholic_a but_o this_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a evasion_n for_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v a_o little_a after_o do_v show_n that_o this_o be_v a_o false_a interpretation_n of_o caluin_n if_o thou_o do_v hold_v thyself_o to_o the_o gospel_n s._n augustine_n speak_v unto_o a_o manichean_a heretic_n i_o will_v hold_v myself_o to_o those_o by_o who_o commandment_n i_o belive_v the_o gospel_n he_o speak_v therefore_o of_o himself_o as_o now_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o after_o a_o few_o word_n who_o authority_n say_v he_o be_v infringe_v &_o weaken_v i_o can_v not_o now_o even_o believe_v the_o gospel_n itself_o where_o he_o show_v plain_o that_o our_o faith_n do_v so_o depend_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v weaken_v or_o take_v a_o way_n it_o can_v not_o remain_v or_o continue_v by_o any_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v false_a which_o junius_n write_v that_o s._n augustine_n do_v only_o speak_v of_o the_o accidentary_a and_o not_o of_o the_o necessary_a cause_n 21._o other_o say_v that_o s._n augustine_n do_v speak_v of_o this_o or_o that_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o not_o of_o the_o whole_a gospel_n in_o general_a but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n do_v teach_v the_o contrary_a because_o he_o speak_v every_o where_n of_o the_o gospel_n itself_o in_o general_a moreover_o one_o and_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v of_o one_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n as_o concern_v faith_n 22._o other_o last_o do_v answer_n that_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n but_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n wherein_o be_v the_o apostle_n who_o approve_v the_o gospel_n but_o this_o solution_n be_v also_o easy_o refute_v out_o of_o the_o word_n next_o follow_v to_o who_o say_v s._n augustin_n i_o have_v obey_v say_v believe_v the_o gospel_n why_o shall_v i_o not_o obey_v they_o then_o say_v unto_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v manicheus_fw-la but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o primitive_a church_n speak_v nothing_o of_o manicheus_fw-la but_o that_o church_n only_o which_o be_v in_o s._n augustine_n time_n say_v unto_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v manicheus_fw-la for_o manicheus_fw-la live_v many_o year_n 4._o 8._o aug._n tom._n 6._o contra_fw-la faustum_n l._n 13._o c._n 4._o after_o the_o primitive_a church_n yea_o even_o after_o s._n cyprian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v almost_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n as_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n testify_v and_o it_o be_v otherwise_o sufficient_o well_o know_v that_o the_o manichean_a heresy_n be_v unknown_a in_o the_o world_n before_o the_o year_n 277._o see_v baronius_n in_o his_o 2._o tom_n in_o the_o year_n 277._o in_o the_o 2._o number_n and_o other_o follow_v chap._n vi_o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v confute_v now_o it_o remain_v we_o answer_v to_o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o by_o our_o answer_n the_o difficulty_n of_o this_o who_o controversy_n will_v be_v more_o
perspicuous_o resolve_v their_o first_o argument_n be_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o our_o faith_n rely_v upon_o man_n and_o not_o upon_o god_n for_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o man_n our_o adversary_n do_v often_o repeat_v and_o inculcate_v this_o argument_n unto_o us._n i_o answer_n that_o the_o same_o argument_n if_o it_o be_v any_o thing_n worth_a will_v also_o prove_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o believe_v scripture_n because_o althose_n who_o write_v the_o book_n of_o the_o bibles_n be_v also_o man_n bu●●●_n we_o do_v believe_v their_o write_n not_o because_o they_o be_v man_n but_o because_o they_o have_v a_o certain_a peculiar_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o do_v so_o govern_v and_o direct_v they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o err_v so_o in_o like_a manner_n we_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o make_v it_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n not_o as_o it_o consist_v of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o have_v a_o special_a and_o continual_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o she_o be_v continual_o govern_v and_o direct_v whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o she_o can_v never_o err_v as_o we_o have_v prove_v praece_v cap._n 7._o praece_v a_o little_a before_o 2._o wherefore_o to_o make_v the_o church_n the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o then_o to_o make_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o christ_n himself_o the_o ground_n thereof_o for_o it_o be_v he_o who_o speak_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n seek_v you_o a_o experiment_n of_o he_o that_o speak_v in_o i_o christ_n and_o in_o another_o place_n speak_v of_o his_o own_o 8._o 2._o cor._n 13._o v._n 3._o 1._o thess_n v._o 8._o doctrine_n he_o say_v therefore_o he_o that_o despise_v these_o thing_n despise_v not_o man_n but_o god_n who_o also_o have_v give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n in_o us._n but_o our_o adversary_n do_v think_v &_o speak_v too_o base_o of_o the_o church_n as_o though_o it_o consist_v of_o man_n only_o as_o the_o church_n of_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n see_v that_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o but_o neither_o be_v this_o to_o make_v the_o scripture_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n subject_a &_o inferito_fw-la our_o man_n as_o our_o adversary_n be_v wont_v to_o cavil_v but_o only_a to_o show_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v every_o where_o conformable_a to_o himself_o &_o that_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o never_o differ_v or_o disagree_v from_o himself_o whether_o he_o speak_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n as_o caluin_n acknowledge_v 2._o calu._n l._n 1._o instit_fw-la c._n 9_o sect_n 2._o dispute_v against_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o libertine_n who_o by_o such_o a_o argument_n go_v about_o to_o reject_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o wit_n lest_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v make_v subject_n and_o inferior_a unto_o they_o 4._o the_o second_o argument_n be_v that_o christian_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o judge_v and_o examine_v all_o thing_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o every_o christian_n ought_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o thing_n i_o answer_v that_o by_o the_o same_o argument_n the_o anabaptist_n &_o libertine_n 15._o 1._o cor._n v._n 15._o reject_v all_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v only_o retain_v the_o spirit_n as_o witness_v caluin_n but_o bad_o for_o even_o as_o christian_n must_v discern_v and_o judge_v all_o thing_n so_o must_v 1._o cal●●_n c._n 9_o citat_fw-la sect_n 1._o they_o also_o observe_v the_o rule_n and_o method_n in_o judge_v which_o the_o scripture_n do_v prescribe_v unto_o they_o and_o which_o himself_o appoint_v but_o this_o rule_n be_v not_o every_o one_o private_a spirit_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o it_o be_v altogether_o necessary_a that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v most_o certain_a &_o free_a from_o all_o error_n as_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v and_o not_o that_o of_o every_o private_a man_n hereupon_o say_v s._n john_n he_o 6._o 1._o joan._n 4._o v._n 6._o which_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o he_o who_o be_v not_o of_o god_n do_v not_o hear_v we_o in_o this_o we_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n we_o must_v therefore_o judge_v of_o every_o man_n by_o that_o they_o either_o hear_v or_o do_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n &c_n &c_n because_o they_o either_o agree_v or_o disagree_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 5._o the_o three_o argument_n be_v that_o catholic_n prove_v the_o church_n and_o the_o authority_n thereof_o by_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o scripture_n be_v rather_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n than_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o scripture_n when_o we_o dispute_v against_o heretic_n be_v a_o argument_n call_v by_o philosopher_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la and_o it_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o premise_n already_o grant_v in_o which_o manner_n also_o the_o first_o principle_n or_o ground_n of_o every_o science_n may_v be_v prove_v and_o out_o of_o those_o thing_n also_o which_o of_o themselves_o be_v not_o very_o strong_a and_o certain_a so_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n against_o the_o jew_n we_o prove_v the_o new_a testament_n albeit_o this_o also_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n because_o the_o jew_n do_v admit_v and_o receive_v the_o old_a testament_n but_o not_o the_o new_a yea_o also_o even_o out_o of_o the_o jewish_a talmud_n we_o prove_v many_o thing_n against_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o admit_v and_o approve_v it_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o their_o talmud_n be_v not_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n because_o this_o only_a be_v as_o i_o say_v a_o argument_n deduce_v out_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o gra●●t_v unto_o us._n so_o in_o like_a man●er_n because_o almost_o all_o heretic_n admit_v the_o scripture_n and_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o when_o we_o dispute_v against_o they_o we_o prove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n as_o premise_n already_o grant_v by_o they_o but_o if_o we_o be_v to_o deal_v with_o infidel_n or_o other_o who_o do_v not_o admit_v the_o scripture_n than_o the_o say_v scripture_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o contrariwise_o for_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n far_o better_o and_o more_o common_o know_v that_o there_o 10._o infra_fw-la 18._o buius_fw-la con_fw-mi ●r_n §._o 10._o be_v a_o church_n then_o that_o there_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o afterward_o we_o will_v show_v more_o clear_o 6._o second_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v so_o great_a connexion_n betwixt_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v very_o well_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o the_o church_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n neither_o shall_v this_o seem_v strange_a to_o our_o adversary_n for_o logician_n also_o know_v very_o well_o that_o that_o which_o by_o it_o own_o nature_n be_v more_o certain_a &_o better_o know_v may_v be_v prove_v by_o that_o which_o be_v more_o certain_a and_o better_o know_v unto_o we_o by_o a_o demonstration_n call_v by_o they_o à_fw-la posteriori_fw-la and_o contrary_a wise_a that_o which_o be_v better_o know_v unto_o we_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o that_o which_o be_v better_o know_v and_o more_o certain_a in_o his_o own_o nature_n by_o a_o demonstration_n call_v à_fw-la priori_fw-la so_o the_o cause_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o effect_n &_o the_o effect_n by_o the_o cause_n as_o fire_n be_v prove_v by_o heat_n à_fw-la posteriori_fw-la and_o heat_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o fire_n à_fw-la priori_fw-la so_o in_o like_a manner_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o be_v more_o certain_a and_o better_o know_v we_o prove_v the_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v à_fw-fr posteriori_fw-la and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o in_o it_o own_o nature_n be_v more_o certain_a we_o prove_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v à_fw-fr priori_fw-la 7._o the_o four_o argument_n s._n paul_n testify_v that_o the_o church_n be_v support_v by_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o their_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a doctrine_n but_o if_o the_o foresay_a doctrine_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o this_o doctrive_v appear_v to_o
be_v certain_a in_o itself_o before_o the_o church_n begin_v to_o be_v the_o church_n therefore_o must_v be_v that_o which_o give_v certainty_n to_o the_o doctrine_n or_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o rather_o their_o doctrine_n and_o writing_n do_v afford_v sufficient_a certainty_n to_o the_o church_n so_o caluin_n 10._o calu._n lib._n 1._o inst_z c._n 7_o sect_n 2._o beza_n in_o 2._o cap._n ad_fw-la ephes_n v._o 10._o i_o answer_v first_o if_o we_o will_v follow_v the_o interpretation_n of_o this_o place_n allege_v by_o beza_n caluins_n argument_n will_v be_v nothing_o worth_a for_o beza_n will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o he_o will_v have_v only_a christ_n to_o be_v the_o groundwork_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n he_o say_v be_v only_o as_o the_o architect_n and_o builder_n of_o this_o church_n as_o also_o all_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n be_v at_o this_o day_n but_o not_o the_o ground_n itself_o beza_n also_o add_v that_o he_o be_v true_o antichrist_n who_o attribute_v that_o unto_o himself_o which_o belong_v only_o to_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 8._o out_o of_o which_o doctrine_n of_o beza_n it_o follow_v manifest_o that_o caluin_n be_v true_o antichrist_n for_o he_o attribute_v unto_o all_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o their_o doctrine_n and_o consequent_o unto_o himself_o and_o his_o own_o doctrine_n that_o they_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o according_a to_o beza_n whosoever_o attribute_v this_o unto_o himself_o be_v plain_o antichrist_n because_o he_o attribute_v that_o unto_o himself_o which_o only_o belong_v unto_o christ_n 9_o second_o i_o answer_v that_o yet_o whatsoever_o beza_n say_v caluins_n exposition_n be_v the_o true_a agree_v therein_o with_o s._n chrrsostome_n ephes_n s._n chrys_n hom._n 6._o inc_fw-la 2._o ad_fw-la ephes_n s._n aug._n tom._n 8._o in_o psal_n 86._o adv_n 1._o theoph_n in_o e._n 2._o ephes_n s._n augustine_n theophilact_n and_o other_o ancient_a father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o s._n paul_n in_o this_o place_n call_v the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o which_o be_v alone_o their_o doctrine_n for_o in_o the_o sameplace_n he_o compare_v christ_n to_o the_o chiese_n corner_n stone_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o this_o spiritual_a building_n do_v consist_v of_o many_o stone_n but_o there_o be_v one_o low_a and_o chief_a to_o wit_n christ_n jesus_n who_o support_v all_o and_o who_o be_v that_o corner_n stone_n which_o unit_v 14._o ephes_n 2._o v._n 14._o the_o jew_n and_o gentill_n together_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n 10._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n john_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n affitm_v that_o this_o heavent_o 14._o apoc._n 2d_o v._n 14._o city_n have_v twelve_o foundation_n and_o not_o only_o one_o and_o christ_n notwithstanding_o be_v initio_fw-la s._n aug._n tom_n 8._o in_o psal_n 86._o initio_fw-la the_o chief_a of_o all_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o foundation_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o all_o those_o twelve_o foundation_n he_o be_v the_o foundation_n 11_o and_o here_o the_o apostle_n use_v t●e_v hebrew_a phrase_n in_o which_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o say_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n &_o to_o say_v upon_o the_o apostolical_a and_o prophetical_a foundation_n for_o the_o hebrew_n 7._o psal_n 5._o v._n 7._o often_o use_v the_o genitive_a case_n of_o the_o substantive_a for_o the_o adiective_n as_o a_o man_n of_o blood_n &_o deceit_n in_o the_o five_o psalm_n signify_v a_o bloody_a and_o deceitful_a man_n 12._o furthermore_o that_o which_o caluin_n say_v that_o the_o apostolical_a and_o prophetical_a doctrine_n have_v it_o certainty_n of_o itself_o before_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o indeed_o be_v true_a but_o this_o be_v the_o certainty_n which_o it_o have_v of_o it_o own_o nature_n from_o 19_o cap._n 13._o praecedent_n §._o 17._o &_o 19_o god_n himself_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o it_o receive_v it_o certainty_n from_o the_o church_n as_o caluin_n and_o bez●_n witness_n &_o as_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v 13._o but_o caluin_n err_v in_o this_o that_o he_o think_v s._n paul_n to_o treat_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n for_o not_o only_o the_o apostolical_a scripture_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o few_o of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n to_o wit_n only_o five_o have_v write_v any_o thing_n but_o of_o the_o other_o seven_o there_o be_v no_o writing_n extant_a but_o yet_o they_o all_o teach_v the_o apostle_n therefore_o speak_v of_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o only_a of_o the_o scripture_n 14._o but_o neither_o do_v we_o deny_v that_o faith_n depend_v of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n yea_o more_o than_o that_o we_o say_v that_o our_o faith_n depend_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o when_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o 17._o ad_fw-la rom._n 10._o v._n 17._o do_v not_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n the_o shoulder_n or_o body_n of_o they_o who_o be_v in_o she_o but_o their_o authority_n doctrine_n and_o preach_v for_o by_o these_o thing_n faith_n be_v engender_v and_o as_o the_o apostle_n witness_v faith_n be_v by_o hear_v 15._o but_o whensoever_o we_o treat_v of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n we_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o want_v true_a faith_n which_o be_v deaf_a dumb_a or_o foolish_a and_o which_o also_o either_o neglect_v or_o not_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o scripture_n for_o such_o a_o church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o we_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o believe_v which_o speak_v which_o preach_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n which_o keep_v and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n most_o faithful_o and_o which_o fit_o appli_v they_o in_o sermon_n &_o exho●tations_n among_o we_o therefore_o all_o these_o word_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o signification_n the_o church_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n the_o preach_v and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n propose_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n and_o we_o understand_v all_o these_o thing_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n when_o we_o say_v that_o she_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v either_o property_n action_n or_o office_n of_o the_o church_n which_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o she_o 16._o wherefore_o our_o adversary_n do_v err_v exceed_o when_o they_o separate_v every_o one_o of_o these_o from_o the_o church_n and_o oppose_v or_o object_v it_o against_o she_o as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o quite_o distinct_a thing_n from_o she_o nay_o of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n they_o make_v she_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n therefore_o the_o apostolical_a &_o prophetical_a doctrine_n must_v not_o be_v separate_v and_o make_v opposite_a unto_o the_o church_n as_o caluin_n do_v see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n caluin_n therefore_o dispute_v as_o if_o one_o shall_v make_v this_o argument_n a_o man_n without_o his_o soul_n neither_o see_v speak_v nor_o understand_v therefore_o a_o man_n neither_o see_v speak_v nor_o understand_v 17._o but_o peradventure_o some_o will_v say_v we_o have_v say_v a_o little_a before_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n and_o now_o we_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n whereof_o the_o one_o seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o other_o i_o answer_v that_o herein_o there_o be_v no_o contrariety_n for_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o faith_n the_o one_o be_v the_o particular_a faith_n of_o every_o christian_a whereby_o together_o with_o hope_n and_o charity_n every_o one_o be_v justify_v the_o other_o be_v the_o general_a and_o common_a faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o particular_a faith_n of_o each_o one_o rely_v upon_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n upon_o the_o faith_n preach_v and_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o she_o herself_o rely_v upon_o the_o general_a faith_n and_o profession_n and_o preach_v thereof_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n when_o therefore_o we_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n we_o speak_v of_o the_o particular_a faith_n of_o every_o christian_a but_o when_o we_o say_v that_o
with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_a the_o which_o they_o shall_v not_o do_v for_o there_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o be_v believe_v preach_v and_o write_v the_o believe_v word_n be_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o church_n that_o which_o be_v preach_v be_v in_o her_o mouth_n and_o that_o which_o be_v write_v be_v in_o her_o book_n of_o the_o believe_v and_o preach_v word_n the_o apostle_n say_v the_o word_n be_v in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o hart_n this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o preach_v we_o 8._o rom._n 20._o v._n 8._o confess_v that_o in_o the_o believe_v and_o preach_v word_n the_o church_n be_v found_v because_o by_o the_o same_o it_o be_v engender_v nourish_v 14._o rom._n 10._o v._n 10._o ibid_fw-la v._o 14._o and_o govern_v and_o that_o unto_o this_o word_n it_o be_v subject_a and_o obedient_a as_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o her_o spouse_n for_o indeed_o this_o kind_n of_o word_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n for_o with_o our_o hart_n say_v the_o apostle_n we_o believe_v unto_o justice_n but_o with_o the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v to_o salvation_n and_o again_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n 2._o but_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o write_a word_n be_v far_o different_a for_o this_o be_v neither_o altogether_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n see_v that_o the_o church_n be_v without_o it_o more_o than_o two_o thousand_o year_n neither_o can_v the_o write_a word_n be_v profitable_a to_o the_o church_n unless_o it_o be_v also_o right_o preach_v and_o believe_v for_o what_o do_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n to_o have_v the_o bible_n unless_o he_o right_o believe_v and_o understand_v it_o 3._o but_o the_o scripture_n whereof_o we_o now_o dispute_v do_v only_o contain_v the_o write_a word_n but_o the_o believe_v and_o preach_v word_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o the_o necessary_a and_o essential_a part_n thereof_o see_v the_o one_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o life_n in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o church_n the_o other_o as_o it_o be_v the_o speech_n in_o her_o mouth_n neither_o can_v they_o ever_o be_v separate_v from_o she_o according_a to_o that_o say_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o ult._n isa_n 59_o v._n ult._n depart_v from_o thy_o mouth_n nor_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n nor_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n seed_n from_o henceforth_o for_o evermore_o 4._o wherefore_o this_o argument_n do_v prove_v the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o see_v that_o the_o write_a word_n receive_v it_o profit_n and_o authority_n from_o the_o right_o believe_v and_o preach_v word_n which_o be_v the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o write_a word_n receive_v that_o authority_n and_o utility_n from_o the_o church_n as_o that_o wherein_o only_o the_o word_n right_o preach_v and_o believe_v be_v to_o be_v find_v 5._o the_o second_o argument_n if_o the_o church_n shall_v teach_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o receive_v that_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n but_o rather_o the_o church_n from_o the_o scripture_n i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o if_o the_o scripture_n shall_v contain_v any_o thing_n against_o truth_n we_o shall_v not_o also_o believe_v it_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v utter_v and_o speak_v any_o lie_n we_o shall_v not_o believe_v he_o but_o th●se_a condition_n be_v indeed_o impossible_a and_o blasphemous_a against_o god_n wherefore_o they_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v admit_v but_o not_o even_o to_o be_v propose_v of_o christian_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o church_n shall_v teach_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n for_o then_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v lie_v because_o he_o shall_v teach_v one_o thing_n by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o contrary_a by_o the_o scripture_n 6._o the_o three_o argument_n if_o the_o scripture_n receive_v that_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n than_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v above_o the_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o absurd_a i_o answer_v that_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v understand_v two_o way_n first_o because_o the_o church_n exceed_v the_o scripture_n in_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n without_o all_o doubt_n the_o church_n be_v about_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v make_v for_o the_o church_n and_o not_o contrary_a wise_n all_o thing_n say_v the_o apostle_n 51._o 1._o cor._n 4._o v._n 51._o be_v do_v for_o you_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o church_n and_o not_o for_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n believe_v hope_v love_v and_o praise_v god_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v none_o of_o these_o the_o church_n shall_v reign_v and_o live_v everlasting_o with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n the_o scripture_n shall_v perish_v after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n last_o the_o church_n contain_v in_o it_o the_o word_n of_o god_n right_o believe_v preach_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n itself_o all_o which_o do_v far_o exceed_v the_o write_a word_n in_o excellency_n and_o dignity_n 7._o second_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n so_o as_o she_o may_v change_v the_o scripture_n or_o of_o scripture_n make_v no_o scripture_n or_o last_o she_o may_v teach_v some_o what_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n or_o depart_v from_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o sense_n the_o sectary_n of_o this_o time_n say_v that_o we_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v above_o the_o scripture_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n but_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o catholic_a which_z in_o this_o sense_n will_v affirm_v that_o the_o argum_fw-la bellar._n l._n 3._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n ult._n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la 14._o argum_fw-la church_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n as_o bellarmine_n true_o affirm_v for_o if_o the_o church_n be_v in_o this_o sense_n above_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n shall_v err_v and_o be_v opposite_a unto_o her_o ●elfe_n because_o in_o that_o the_o church_n have_v once_o approve_v the_o scripture_n she_o can_v any_o more_o reject_v and_o disprove_v it_o unless_o she_o contradict_v herself_o which_o be_v impossible_a 8._o the_o four_o argument_n the_o holy_a scripture_n receive_v her_o authority_n immediate_o from_o god_n himself_o because_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o do_v not_o receive_v it_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o certaynties_n the_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n in_o it_o own_o nature_n the_o other_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o so_o also_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o authoritye_n the_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n consider_v in_o itself_o and_o this_o have_v the_o scripture_n from_o her_o principal_a author_n to_o wit_n god_n himself_o the_o other_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o we_o and_o this_o it_o have_v from_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v 19_o cap_n 13._o praece_v §._o 17._o &_o 19_o prove_v before_o out_o of_o caluin_n and_o beza_n for_o we_o know_v not_o otherwise_o that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o scripture_n with_o any_o certainty_n of_o faith_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n 9_o and_o that_o which_o we_o have_v say_v of_o the_o scripture_n may_v also_o be_v evident_o see_v in_o christ_n our_o lord_n who_o be_v above_o the_o scripture_n for_o christ_n be_v force_v to_o prove_v his_o authority_n by_o miracle_n that_o it_o may_v the_o better_o be_v know_v and_o allow_v of_o man_n for_o otherwise_o the_o jew_n have_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o have_v admit_v his_o authority_n joan._n joan._n 15._o v._n 14._o s._n aug._n tom._n 9_o tract_n 91._o in_o joan._n hereupon_o say_v christ_n speak_v unto_o his_o disciple_n of_o the_o jew_n if_o i_o have_v not_o do_v among_o they_o work_v that_o no_o other_o man_n have_v do_v they_o shall_v not_o have_v sin_v that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o infidelity_n not_o believe_v in_o christ_n a●_n s._n augustine_n very_o well_o expound_v and_o in_o another_o place_n speak_v unto_o the_o jew_n 17._o joan._n 10._o v._n 17._o he_o say_v if_o i_o do_v not_o the_o work_n of_o my_o father_n believe_v i_o not_o 10._o but_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v most_o excellent_a in_o itself_o and_o immediate_o from_o god_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o those_o mean_n whereby_o it_o may_v become_v know_v unto_o we_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v it_o much_o more_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n will_v stand_v in_o need_n
write_a point_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o no●_n other_o judge_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v end_v or_o define_v all_o these_o controversye_n 29._o but_o in_o this_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v the_o one_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o judge_v of_o any_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n out_o of_o her_o own_o proper_a sense_n and_o judgement_n or_o at_o she_o own_o pleasure_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o her_o adversary_n and_o namely_o caluin_n do_v wrongful_o slander_v she_o but_o by_o one_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v better_o know_v she_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o be_v less_o know_v and_o manifest_v unto_o we_o as_o for_o example_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n she_o judge_v of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o 30._o the_o other_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v be_v that_o when_o the_o church_n do_v judge_v of_o these_o thing_n they_o be_v not_o man_n only_o 28._o act._n 15._o v._n 28._o which_o judge_n as_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o himself_o who_o judge_v and_o speak_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n it_o seem_v good_a say_v the_o apostle_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o us._n for_o even_o as_o the_o action_n of_o a_o man_n body_n be_v not_o so_o proper_o the_o action_n of_o the_o body_n as_o of_o the_o soul_n which_o quicken_v and_o move_v the_o body_n so_o the_o action_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o man_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n which_o give_v life_n and_o motion_n to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n they_o therefore_o who_o deny_v this_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o injurious_a to_o the_o church_n but_o also_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hitherto_o of_o the_o property_n office_n and_o power_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n it_o fine_a calu._n in_o antid_v contra_fw-la 4._o sess_v council_n trid._n in_o fine_a remain_v now_o we_o show_v such_o a_o church_n as_o the_o scripture_n declare_v and_o describe_v unto_o we_o the_o which_o caluin_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o earnest_o desire_v of_o us._n finis_fw-la of_o the_o mark_v of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o false_a and_o true_a sign_n or_o mark_v of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n have_v in_o the_o precedent_a controversye_n declare_v that_o christ_n and_o all_o that_o good_a be_v can_v only_o be_v find_v in_o the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o out_o of_o it_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o everlasting_a damnation_n now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o inquire_v which_o be_v that_o true_a church_n where_o it_o may_v be_v find_v and_o how_o it_o be_v describe_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o all_o the_o sect_n of_o heresy_n go_v about_o to_o challenge_v she_o unto_o themselves_o yea_o even_o those_o who_o otherwise_o have_v a_o very_a bad_a conceit_n and_o opinion_n of_o she_o for_o they_o see_v very_o well_o that_o out_o of_o she_o they_o can_v expect_v or_o hope_v for_o no_o salvation_n but_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v not_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n we_o will_v seek_v out_o the_o true_a mark_n and_o sign_n whereby_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v certain_o know_v and_o discern_v from_o every_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a church_n 2._o our_o adversary_n do_v common_o 4._o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 7._o sect_n 9_o &_o 10._o bez._n in_o sva_fw-la confess_v c._n 5._o art_n 7._o centuriatores_fw-la 1._o centur._n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o l._n 2._o cap._n 4._o set_v down_o two_o sign_n or_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n bez●_n add_v a_o three_o sign_n to_o wit_n the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n practise_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o lutheran_n annex_v unto_o these_o a_o four_o sign_n to_o wit_n a_o obedience_n towards_o minister_n of_o this_o four_o sign_n we_o will_v speak_v a_o little_a after_o for_o it_o be_v reduce_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o three_o sign_n set_v down_o by_o the_o caluinist_n be_v altogether_o foolish_a and_o frivolous_a the_o which_o we_o prove_v thus_o 3._o first_o by_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o a_o sign_n for_o every_o sign_n of_o it_o own_o nature_n 11._o s._n aug._n tom._n ●_o l._n 2._o the_o doct_n christ_n cap_n 1._o &_o 3_o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 17._o sect_n 11._o be_v a_o sensilbe_n thing_n as_o all_o teach_v follow_v therein_o s._n augustine_n and_o our_o adversary_n confess_v this_o to_o be_v true_a when_o they_o treat_v of_o the_o sacrament_n yea_o caluin_n write_v that_o this_o be_v always_o as_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o do_v all_o teach_v now_o who_o be_v of_o understanding_n true_o none_o will_v say_v that_o which_o be_v only_o believe_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n but_o that_o which_o be_v see_v but_o these_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n prescribe_v by_o our_o adversary_n can_v neither_o be_v see_v nor_o perceyve_v by_o any_o sense_n yea_o not_o even_o by_o our_o understanding_n unless_o it_o be_v illuminate_v by_o faith_n for_o by_o faith_n only_o be_v they_o preceyve_v because_o none_o can_v know_v which_o be_v the_o sincere_a preach_n lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n prescribe_v by_o christ_n but_o by_o faith_n wherefore_o they_o who_o say_v that_o these_o be_v the_o sign_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o indeed_o know_v what_o they_o say_v even_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v affirm_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n the_o ablution_n and_o the_o word_n be_v not_o sign_n but_o the_o effect_n of_o baptism_n which_o be_v not_o see_v which_o every_o man_n see_v how_o absurd_a it_o be_v 4._o the_o second_o reason_n every_o sign_n of_o any_o thing_n must_v be_v more_o manifest_a and_o better_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n itself_o who_o sign_n it_o be_v because_o it_o be_v put_v for_o that_o end_n that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o sign_n or_o token_n whereby_o that_o other_o thing_n may_v be_v know_v but_o these_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n allege_v by_o our_o adversary_n be_v more_o obscure_a and_o uncertain_a than_o the_o church_n itself_o for_o the_o church_n be_v at_o the_o least_o oftentimes_o visible_a as_o they_o themselves_o confess_v but_o these_o their_o sign_n be_v never_o visible_a but_o always_o invisible_a for_o they_o can_v only_o be_v know_v by_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v but_o that_o which_o be_v by_o faith_n declare_v be_v necessary_o obscure_a because_o faith_n as_o witness_v the_o 1._o heb._n 11._o v._o 1._o apostle_n be_v the_o argument_n of_o thing_n not_o appear_v &_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o all_o sect_n do_v brag_v and_o boast_v that_o they_o have_v these_o sign_n because_o indeed_o they_o can_v be_v clear_o see_v of_o any_o 5._o the_o three_o reason_n our_o adversary_n do_v allege_v in_o vain_a these_o sign_n for_o therefore_o do_v we_o inquire_v for_o sign_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o which_o be_v ignorant_a of_o she_o may_v thereby_o come_v to_o know_v she_o for_o they_o who_o already_o know_v any_o thing_n do_v not_o need_v any_o sign_n as_o for_o example_n he_o who_o already_o know_v very_o well_o this_o city_n need_v no_o mark_n or_o sign_n thereof_o whereby_o he_o may_v know_v it_o but_o he_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o sign_n who_o never_o see_v this_o city_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n they_o who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o know_v she_o not_o do_v most_o of_o all_o need_n some_o sign_n and_o mark_n whereby_o to_o know_v she_o but_o these_o which_o our_o adversary_n assign_v can_v be_v know_v by_o none_o but_o by_o those_o who_o be_v already_o within_o the_o church_n and_o know_v she_o very_o well_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o belief_n thereof_o but_o they_o can_v be_v understand_v by_o those_o who_o know_v not_o the_o true_a church_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v seek_v and_o find_v she_o because_o they_o be_v only_o perceyve_v and_o know_v by_o faith_n they_o be_v therefore_o allege_v in_o vain_a by_o our_o adversary_n 6._o but_o neither_o can_v these_o sign_n be_v know_v of_o all_o those_o who_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o only_o of_o the_o more_o learned_a in_o the_o church_n for_o every_o one_o of_o the_o common_a
people_n can_v discern_v which_o be_v the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n prescribe_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o who_o know_v all_o these_o thing_n well_o shall_v also_o understand_v almost_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n moreover_o there_o be_v as_o yet_o a_o very_a great_a controversy_n among_o ●ur_n adversary_n themselves_o concern_v these_o three_o sign_n while_o that_o some_o of_o they_o do_v contend_v &_o strive_v that_o this_o be_v the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n other_o that_o some_o do_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n other_o that_o some_o do_v say_v this_o be_v the_o discipline_n prescribe_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n other_o assign_v another_o quite_o different_a from_o this_o 7._o but_o our_o adversary_n do_v in_o very_a truth_n confound_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o sign_n thereof_o for_o to_o preach_v sincere_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n lawful_o and_o to_o appoint_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o seq_fw-la supr_fw-la c._n 1._o buius_fw-la con_fw-mi §._o 9_o &_o seq_fw-la church_n right_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o and_o not_o the_o sign_n thereof_o these_o sign_n therefore_o be_v reject_v which_o our_o adversary_n do_v assign_v it_o remain_v that_o we_o inquire_v out_o the_o true_a sign_n of_o the_o church_n 8._o but_o this_o be_v first_o to_o be_v presuppose_v as_o it_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o that_o we_o be_v to_o speak_v of_o this_o matter_n that_o even_o natural_a reason_n itself_o do_v clear_o demonstrate_v that_o there_o be_v some_o true_a church_n of_o god_n here_o upon_o earth_n for_o this_o be_v one_o of_o those_o first_o principle_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v as_o evident_o prove_v by_o natural_a reason_n as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n place_v these_o two_o among_o the_o first_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n he_o that_o come_v to_o god_n say_v he_o must_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v &_o be_v a_o rewarder_n to_o they_o that_o seek_v ●_o hebr._n v._o ●_o he_o but_o they_o which_o so_o seek_v after_o god_n that_o they_o may_v be_v reward_v by_o he_o be_v without_o all_o doubt_n in_o the_o true_a church_n 4._o moreover_o natural_a reason_n itself_o do_v evident_o teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n leave_v by_o god_n for_o man_n to_o obtain_v their_o eternal_a salvation_n see_v that_o this_o be_v quite_o opposite_a to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n &_o to_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n but_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n beside_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o controversiae_fw-la cap._n 2d_o huius_fw-la controversiae_fw-la but_o because_o there_o be_v so_o many_o &_o so_o diverse_a opinion_n of_o man_n concern_v this_o so_o necessary_a a_o way_n to_o salvation_n there_o be_v also_o certain_a sign_n &_o mark_n thereof_o set_v down_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o understand_v which_o be_v indeed_o the_o certain_a and_o most_o true_a way_n 10._o out_o of_o these_o which_o we_o have_v now_o fine_a supra_fw-la c._n 14._o huius_fw-la controu_fw-fr §._o 5._o in_o fine_a say_v follow_v first_o that_o that_o which_o we_o have_v insinuate_v before_o be_v most_o true_a to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v more_o certain_a &_o evident_a that_o there_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v that_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o natural_a reason_n that_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o church_n of_o god_n here_o upon_o earth_n the_o which_o be_v not_o so_o evident_a of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 11._o the_o second_o thing_n which_o ensue_v be_v that_o to_o these_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n these_o two_o conditious_a be_v altogether_o necessary_a the_o first_o be_v that_o they_o must_v be_v such_o as_o that_o they_o may_v not_o only_o be_v perceive_v by_o faith_n and_o our_o understanding_n but_o even_o by_o sense_n itself_o for_o other_o wise_a they_o can_v be_v true_a sign_n as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v the_o other_o be_v that_o they_o be_v know_v and_o manifest_a to_o all_o man_n even_o unto_o infidel_n see_v that_o otherwise_o 8._o isa_n 35._o five_o 8._o they_o can_v help_v they_o or_o convince_v and_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o prophet_n testify_v be_v a_o direct_a way_n so_o that_o fool_n that_o be_v to_o 8._o bellarm_n per_fw-la totum_fw-la l._n 4._o de_fw-fr eccles_n militante_fw-la bozius_n de_fw-fr signis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la coccius_n tom._n 1._o per_fw-la totum_fw-la l._n 8._o say_v infidel_n can_v err_v by_o it_o 12._o of_o these_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n bellarmine_n coccius_n and_o thomas_n bozius_n eugubinus_n discourse_n at_o large_a who_o have_v gather_v twenty_o four_o sign_n in_o all_o of_o the_o true_a church_n all_o which_o he_o manifest_o prove_v to_o agree_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n out_o of_o these_o author_n more_o sign_n may_v be_v require_v 13._o but_o we_o regard_v our_o intend_a brevity_n will_v only_o allege_v four_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o nicene_n and_o constantinopolitan_a creed_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o true_a church_n be_v one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a for_o these_o four_o sign_n be_v so_o certain_a that_o they_o can_v be_v reject_v even_o by_o our_o adversary_n first_o because_o they_o be_v express_o set_v down_o in_o holy_a scripture_n as_o we_o will_v show_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n moreover_o our_o adversary_n do_v profess_v that_o they_o admit_v and_o receive_v three_o creed_n to_o wit_n the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o nicene_n and_o fine_a rupell_v confess_v artic._n 5._o in_o fine_a that_o of_o s._n athanasius_n but_o in_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o nicen_n creed_n these_o four_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n be_v express_o set_v down_o whereof_o we_o will_v now_o speak_v more_o particular_o chap._n ii_o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a s._n augustine_n very_o well_o admonish_v we_o that_o when_o we_o dispute_v against_o 3._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 3._o heretic_n which_o do_v admit_v the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o shall_v prove_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o sign_n thereof_o out_o of_o the_o say_v holy_a writ_n for_o as_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n note_v in_o another_o place_n the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v more_o obscure_o of_o christ_n i_o s._n aug._n tom._n 8._o con_v 2._o in_o psal_n 30._o super_fw-la ea_fw-la verba_fw-la v._n 12._o qui_fw-la videbant_fw-la i_o foras_fw-la fugerunt_fw-la à_fw-la i_o than_o they_o do_v of_o the_o church_n because_o by_o their_o prophetical_a spirit_n they_o do_v see_v that_o there_o will_v arise_v great_a strife_n &_o debate_n about_o the_o church_n they_o of_o christ_n himself_o we_o will_v therefore_o here_o prove_v these_o four_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n first_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o second_o by_o natural_a reason_n see_v that_o these_o sign_n must_v be_v such_o as_o may_v convince_v those_o which_o do_v not_o admit_v the_o scripture_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n 2._o the_o first_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v unity_n for_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a unity_n necessary_o preach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o first_o be_v of_o all_o the_o member_n with_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o be_v effect_v by_o faith_n wherefore_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o there_o must_v be_v but_o one_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n one_o lord_n and_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n and_o one_o faith_n and_o again_o until_o we_o all_o meet_v in_o the_o unity_n 13._o ephes_n 4._o v._n 5._o eph._n 4._o v._n 13._o of_o faith_n 3._o the_o second_o unity_n be_v of_o all_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o for_o as_o he_o who_o dissolve_v the_o first_o unity_n be_v a_o heretic_n so_o he_o which_o violate_v this_o be_v a_o schismatic_n wherefore_o christ_n say_v in_o this_o all_o man_n shall_v know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o have_v love_v one_o to_o another_o and_o the_o apostle_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o schism_n in_o the_o body_n but_o the_o member_n 33._o joan._n 13._o v._n 15._o 1._o cor._n 1._o v._n 25._o 1._o cor._n 24._o v._n 33._o together_o may_v be_v careful_a one_o for_o another_o final_o god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o dissension_n but_o of_o peace_n as_o also_o in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n i_o teach_v say_v the_o same_o apostle_n 4._o
with_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v to_o profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n and_o not_o that_o of_o wittemberge_n as_o luther_n or_o that_o of_o geneva_n as_o caluin_n do_v wherefore_o with_o good_a right_n we_o profess_v ourselves_o not_o only_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o catholic_a but_o also_o of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n and_o faith_n the_o which_o s._n paul_n also_o manifest_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v 4._o but_o our_o adversary_n object_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o afterward_o she_o forsake_v and_o lose_v it_o so_o in_o time_n past_o those_o heretic_n which_o be_v call_v donatist_n when_o they_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o argument_n of_o catholic_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o indeed_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v famous_a over_o all_o the_o world_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o in_o their_o time_n she_o perish_v in_o all_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o remain_v only_o among_o the_o donatist_n in_o 12._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 12._o africa_a who_o s._n augustine_n refute_v very_o well_o and_o we_o imitate_v he_o herein_o will_v use_v this_o kind_n of_o argument_n that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v once_o the_o true_a and_o sincere_a faith_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v express_o testify_v but_o that_o the_o same_o church_n afterward_o forsake_v or_o lose_v her_o former_a faith_n be_v not_o where_o extant_a in_o holy_a writ_n therefore_o we_o must_v not_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v so_o express_o against_o the_o scripture_n 5._o and_o this_o argument_n indeed_o urge_v much_o more_o our_o adversary_n then_o the_o donatist_n see_v that_o they_o teach_v that_o we_o must_v believe_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o express_o in_o scripture_n but_o this_o be_v no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v express_o therein_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n forsake_v or_o lose_v her_o faith_n which_o she_o have_v receyve_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o true_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a sign_n of_o the_o want_n of_o learning_n and_o judgement_n then_o to_o think_v that_o that_o church_n forsake_v and_o lose_v her_o faith_n who_o faith_n even_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n do_v so_o great_o commend_v unto_o we_o unless_o this_o her_o forsake_v and_o lose_v of_o her_o former_a true_a faith_n can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n 6._o our_o adversary_n indeed_o say_v that_o they_o will_v prove_v it_o in_o some_o particular_a point_n of_o faith_n but_o they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v their_o promise_n as_o in_o every_o particular_a controversy_n will_v appear_v 7._o moreover_o god_n promise_v to_o this_o espouse_v of_o christ_n by_o the_o prophet_n isay_n the_o which_o he_o also_o confirm_v with_o a_o oath_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v invest_v and_o adorn_v with_o diverse_a nation_n and_o people_n for_o so_o speak_v god_n to_o the_o church_n lift_v up_o thy_o eye_n and_o look_v round_o about_o thou_o and_o see_v all_o these_o 18._o isa_n 40._o v._n 18._o be_v gather_v together_o they_o be_v come_v unto_o thou_o as_o i_o live_v say_v our_o lord_n thou_o shall_v be_v invest_v with_o all_o these_o as_o with_o a_o ornament_n &_o thou_o shall_v compass_v they_o about_o unto_o thy_o self_n as_o a_o spouse_n so_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o have_v and_o still_o have_v many_o nation_n and_o people_n subject_a unto_o she_o wherewith_o she_o be_v invest_v and_o adorn_v the_o which_o even_o our_o adversary_n can_v deny_v 8._o second_o the_o church_n be_v the_o visible_a and_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o have_v always_o be_v and_o now_o also_o there_o be_v the_o visible_a body_n of_o christ_n consist_v of_o diverse_a member_n and_o state_n as_o also_o of_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n whereof_o s._n paul_n speak_v write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o corinthian_n 9_o three_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o roman_a 12._o ephes_n 4._o v._n 11._o &_o 12._o 1._o cor._n 12._o v._n 12._o church_n there_o have_v always_o &_o now_o also_o be_v the_o visible_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o such_o a_o one_o as_o the_o prophet_n isay_n describe_v when_o he_o say_v that_o king_n and_o queen_n shall_v be_v thy_o nurse_n for_o there_o have_v 23._o isa_n 46._o five_o 23._o ever_o be_v since_o the_o conversion_n of_o nation_n many_o king_n and_o monarch_n who_o have_v agree_v in_o unity_n of_o faith_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o have_v acknowledge_v always_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a head_n and_o pastor_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a 8._o coccius_n tom_n 1._o l._n art_n 7._o 8._o militant_a church_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o coccius_n have_v set_v down_o in_o his_o catalogue_n to_o this_o purpose_n 10._o furthermore_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n thus_o describe_v the_o future_a kingdom_n of_o 22._o jerem._n 33._o v._o 20._o 21._o &_o 22._o christ_n this_o say_v our_o lord_n if_o my_o covenant_n can_v be_v break_v and_o make_v void_a with_o the_o day_n and_o my_o covenant_n with_o the_o night_n so_o that_o there_o be_v neither_o day_n nor_o night_n in_o their_o due_a time_n then_o my_o covenant_n can_v be_v break_v with_o my_o servant_n david_n that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o son_n of_o his_o reign_v in_o his_o throne_n and_o the_o levit_n and_o priest_n my_o minister_n as_o the_o ●larres_n of_o the_o heaven_n can_v be_v number_v nor_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n measure_v so_o will_v i_o multiply_v the_o seed_n of_o my_o servant_n david_n and_o the_o levit_n my_o minister_n thus_o say_v god_n by_o his_o prophet_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n his_o son_n and_o of_o the_o levit_n and_o priest_n minister_a unto_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o the_o infinite_a number_n of_o they_o which_o be_v manifest_a to_o have_v be_v fullfil_v hitherto_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n 11._o four_o the_o church_n be_v the_o inheritance_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o according_a 10._o psal_n 2._o v._n 8._o psal_n 1._o v._n 7._o 8._o isa_n 51_o v._n 10._o to_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n extend_v herself_o to_o the_o very_a bound_n and_o limit_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n which_o be_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o nation_n the_o which_o all_o the_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v see_v &_o last_o which_o be_v extend_v from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n 12._o ma●_n ab_fw-la 1._o v._n 12._o but_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o have_v always_o be_v such_o a_o inheritance_n of_o christ_n 12._o hereupon_o be_v those_o famous_a word_n of_o s._n leo_n to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n these_o be_v they_o who_o have_v exalt_v thou_o to_o this_o glory_n that_o be_v a_o holy_a nation_n a_o choose_a people_n a_o priestly_a &_o pausi_n s._n leo_n serm_n 1._o in_o natal_n apost_n petri_n &_o pausi_n a_o princely_a city_n by_o the_o holy_a seat_n of_o s._n peter_n make_v the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v have_v a_o more_o large_a command_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o divine_a religion_n than_o ever_o thou_o have_v by_o foreign_a domination_n for_o albeit_o thou_o be_v famous_a renown_v for_o many_o victory_n haste_v extend_v the_o limit_n of_o thy_o empire_n both_o by_o sea_n and_o land_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v less_o which_o thy_o warlike_a labour_n have_v subdue_v then_o that_o which_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n have_v make_v subject_a unto_o thou_o hitherto_o s._n leo._n 13._o moreover_o s._n prosper_v the_o great_a glory_n of_o aquitania_n and_o dear_o belove_a friend_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o who_o defend_v egregious_o his_o doctrine_n against_o the_o pelagian_n in_o a_o certain_a book_n write_v in_o verse_n against_o the_o same_o pelagian_n speak_v of_o their_o heresy_n write_v thus_o when_o this_o infectious_a pestilence_n arise_v rome_n peter_n seat_n first_o give_v it_o deadly_a blow_n 2._o s._n prosp_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr ingratis_fw-la cont_n pelag_n c._n 2._o which_o make_v the_o head_n of_o pastoral_a dignity_n whereto_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v obedient_a be_v can_v more_v now_o subject_a by_o religion_n law_n then_o her_o fierce_a army_n erst_o can_v keep_v in_o awe_n thus_o write_v he_o a_o 1200._o year_n ago_o 14._o but_o in_o this_o our_o age_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v propagate_v and_o preach_v in_o the_o most_o remote_a country_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n yea_o even_o unto_o the_o further_a part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n come_v oftentimes_o from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o
east_n indies_n to_o the_o west_n and_o they_o 12._o malac._n 1._o v._o 12._o compass_v the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v preach_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n every_o where_o wherefore_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v preach_v &_o receive_v in_o this_o ou●_n age_n in_o many_o &_o more_o remote_a place_n of_o the_o world_n they_o ever_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o which_o be_v most_o assure_o testify_v by_o the_o letter_n and_o book_n even_o of_o they_o who_o write_v what_o themselves_o have_v see_v 15._o five_o the_o church_n be_v the_o city_n of_o christ_n place_v upon_o a_o mountain_n which_o can_v be_v hide_v so_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 14._o matt._n 5._o v._n 14._o have_v always_o be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n neither_o can_v it_o ever_o be_v hide_v by_o these_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o the_o true_a property_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n agree_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 16._o but_o that_o they_o can_v agree_v with_o any_o other_o it_o appear_v sufficient_o by_o that_o our_o adversary_n can_v assign_v no_o church_n which_o can_v have_v these_o property_n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o confess_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n or_o true_o which_o be_v most_o absurd_a that_o christ_n have_v want_v and_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o spouse_n now_o for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o as_o also_o to_o have_v want_v his_o body_n city_n kingdom_n and_o inheritance_n chap._n four_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n we_o have_v 5._o supr_fw-la 18._o huius_fw-la controver_n §_o 3._o 4._o &_o 5._o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o property_n of_o the_o same_o now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o peculiar_a office_n and_o function_n of_o the_o true_a church_n many_o reason_n may_v by_o deduce_v out_o of_o these_o but_o we_o will_v brief_o touch_v only_o the_o chief_a 2._o the_o first_o reason_n be_v take_v from_o those_o very_a sign_n which_o our_o adversary_n assign_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o true_a and_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v indeed_o office_n and_o not_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o but_o whether_o they_o be_v sign_n or_o office_n by_o they_o it_o be_v evident_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n last_o past_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o where_o lawful_o administer_v nor_o the_o word_n of_o god_n sincere_o preach_v but_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o our_o adversary_n can_v name_v any_o church_n wherein_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v do_v therefore_o either_o the_o roman_n be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o else_o christ_n have_v have_v no_o church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o 1582._o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 2._o sect_n 11._o &_o 21._o beza_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccles_n p._n 145._o in_o fine_a geneu_fw-fr edit_fw-la a_o 1582._o 3._o neither_o must_v our_o adversary_n answer_n we_o with_o caluin_n and_o beza_n that_o their_o church_n indeed_o remain_v in_o the_o popedom_n for_o they_o can_v find_v it_o any_o where_o else_o yet_o half_o destroy_v and_o filthy_o corrupt_v and_o deface_v with_o many_o error_n for_o here_o we_o inquire_v after_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o such_o a_o profane_a and_o filthy_a church_n which_o caluin_n describe_v wherein_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v lie_v half_o dead_a and_o bury_v the_o gospel_n overthrow_v &_o citat_fw-la calu._n sect_n 12._o citat_fw-la piety_n banish_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n almost_o quite_o abolish_v for_o such_o a_o church_n be_v not_o indeed_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o den_n of_o devil_n 4._o moreover_o they_o must_v not_o here_o run_v to_o any_o invisible_a church_n altogether_o unknowen_a both_o to_o themselves_o and_o we_o the_o which_o our_o adversary_n seem_v to_o establish_v for_o we_o have_v sufficient_o declare_v before_o cont_n supr_fw-la c._n 4._o huius_fw-la cont_n that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v always_o visible_a wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o show_v we_o some_o other_o visible_a beside_o the_o roman_a church_n wherein_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n past_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v public_o preach_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n they_o preach_v it_o now_o and_o the_o sacrament_n public_o administer_v as_o they_o be_v now_o and_o that_o continual_o also_o without_o interruption_n or_o true_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o this_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n have_v always_o be_v public_o preach_v without_o any_o intermission_n and_o all_o the_o sacrament_n public_o administer_v and_o that_o sincere_o and_o lawful_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o we_o will_v here_o after_o declare_v in_o the_o controversye_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n 5._o the_o lutheran_n that_o they_o may_v avoid_v conver_v vide_fw-la c●nsuram_fw-la orientalis_n ecclesiae_fw-la ●_o stanisla●_n socolonio_n polono_n ex_fw-la graeco_fw-la in_o latinun_n conver_v this_o argument_n flee_v to_o the_o grecian_a church_n where_o they_o affirm_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n remain_v but_o they_o be_v present_o reject_v and_o condemn_v by_o they_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o answer_n of_o jeremy_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o german_n write_v in_o greek_a in_o the_o year_n 1576._o neither_o do_v the_o grecian_n disagree_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o those_o point_n which_o be_v now_o adays_o in_o controversy_n but_o in_o that_o one_o article_n of_o faith_n wherein_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v only_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o not_o the_o son_n the_o which_o error_n even_o all_o 6._o rupell_v confess_v art_n 6._o our_o adversary_n which_o follow_v luther_n and_o caluin_n do_v condemn_v aswell_o as_o we_o 6._o the_o which_o when_o the_o late_a sectary_n well_o perceave_v they_o be_v force_v at_o length_n to_o fly_v to_o those_o heretic_n which_o be_v in_o time_n past_o condemn_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n among_o who_o they_o seek_v for_o their_o church_n where_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v three_o thing_n against_o the_o great_a boldness_n of_o these_o man_n 7._o the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o true_a church_n have_v always_o continue_v as_o we_o have_v declare_v lu●heran_n cap._n 3._o huius_fw-la cont●_n geneb_n in_o chron._n coccius_n tom._n 1._o l._n 8._o art_n 2._o histor_n magdeb._n lu●heran_n before_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o these_o man_n can_v never_o show_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o heretic_n of_o what_o religion_n soever_o they_o be_v but_o only_o a_o interrupt_a continuance_n and_o that_o sometime_o for_o a_o great_a space_n together_o the_o which_o may_v easy_o be_v understand_v by_o genebrard_n coccius_n and_o all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n of_o what_o religion_n soever_o they_o be_v 8._o the_o second_o our_o adversary_n can_v prove_v all_o their_o point_n out_o of_o any_o one_o ancient_a heretic_n but_o they_o borrow_v 3._o lyndanus_n in_o tabulis_fw-la coccius_n tom._n 1._o lib._n 8._o art_n 3._o one_o heresy_n condemn_v in_o time_n pass_v of_o one_o and_o another_o of_o some_o other_o as_o lindanus_n and_o coccius_n very_o well_o declare_v at_o large_a 9_o the_o three_o be_v that_o our_o adversary_n must_v needs_o confess_v that_o those_o of_o who_o they_o have_v beg_v and_o borrow_v 4._o saunder_n lib._n 7._o d●_n visibili_fw-la monar_n eccl._n prateol_n in_o elench_v h●ret_n coccius_n tom._n 1._o l._n 8._o art_n 3._o &_o 4._o their_o doctrine_n do_v err_v foul_o in_o many_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n among_o they_o yea_o even_o those_o ancient_a heretic_n have_v firm_o and_o constant_o believe_v many_o point_n with_o we_o against_o our_o aduesary_n as_o doctor_n sanders_n gabriel_n prateolus_n and_o coccius_n do_v manifest_o declare_v 10._o the_o second_o reason_n the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o bring_v forth_o child_n to_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o convert_v infidel_n and_o gentill_n from_o their_o idolatry_n to_o the_o catholyke_a faith_n this_o the_o r●man_a church_n have_v perform_v not_o only_o in_o the_o first_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n as_o our_o adversary_n confess_v but_o in_o every_o
very_a well_o be_v apply_v in_o this_o manner_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o know_v say_v he_o what_o be_v write_v in_o the_o holy_a and_o canonical_a scripture_n concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o faith_n thereof_o i_o know_v not_o what_o you_o say_v of_o her_o apostasy_n or_o fall_v from_o she_o say_v true_o as_o we_o do_v read_v in_o book_n the_o which_o you_o also_o do_v honour_n &_o reverence_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o faith_n thereof_o so_o also_o read_v you_o unto_o we_o out_o of_o book_n the_o which_o we_o also_o do_v honour_n and_o reverence_n how_o she_o forsake_v and_o lose_v her_o faith_n do_v it_o please_v you_o that_o we_o shall_v believe_v every_o slanderous_a reproach_n of_o man_n upon_o what_o occasion_n soever_o it_o be_v utter_v and_o object_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v both_o deliver_v &_o commend_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o holy_a scripture_n this_o indeed_o be_v please_v to_o you_o but_o who_o also_o it_o shall_v more_o just_o please_v you_o see_v well_o enough_o but_o you_o be_v overcome_v by_o obstinacy_n will_v not_o yield_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o a_o little_a after_o lo_o here_o the_o roman_a church_n 8._o rom._n 1._o v._n 7._o rom._n 1._o v._n 8._o with_o who_o i_o communicate_v where_o i_o read_v thou_o her_o name_n there_o find_v thou_o i_o her_o saulte_n if_o thou_o can_v but_o if_o thou_o cry_v and_o rehearse_a they_o from_o some_o other_o place_n we_o follow_v the_o voice_n of_o our_o pastor_n evident_o declare_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n do_v not_o admit_v believe_v or_o hear_v 17._o joan._n 10._o v._n 17._o your_o word_n my_o sheep_n say_v our_o heavenly_a pastor_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o follow_v i_o his_o testimony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o obscure_a but_o very_o clear_a and_o manifest_v whosoever_o will_v not_o go_v astray_o or_o wander_v 8._o rom_n 1._o v._o 7._o &_o 8._o from_o his_o flock_n let_v he_o hear_v he_o let_v he_o follow_v he_o hitherto_o s._n augustine_n 20._o final_o it_o be_v here_o diligent_o to_o be_v note_v that_o our_o adversary_n never_o dare_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o affirm_v so_o strange_a and_o absurd_a thing_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o ancient_a in_o itself_o and_o so_o commend_v by_o all_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n yea_o and_o by_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n himself_o but_o that_o they_o 8._o rom._n 1._o v._n 7._o &_o 8._o false_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o she_o have_v lose_v and_o forsake_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n hereupon_o they_o say_v that_o rome_n be_v babylon_n and_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o affirm_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n but_o if_o it_o be_v once_o prove_v manifest_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n all_o our_o adversary_n weapon_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v easy_o be_v blunt_v and_o overthrow_v and_o also_o they_o will_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v with_o caluin_n that_o the_o infine_v calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 1._o sect_n 100l_n infine_v breach_n from_o this_o church_n be_v the_o denial_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n or_o that_o there_o can_v be_v imagine_v any_o fault_n more_o heinous_a but_o this_o god_n willing_a shall_v be_v more_o evident_o hereafter_o declare_v in_o every_o controversy_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n &_o of_o the_o kiss_n of_o his_o foot_n among_o other_o crime_n wherewith_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v charge_v by_o our_o adversary_n one_o at_o which_o many_o take_v offence_n be_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o kiss_n of_o his_o foot_n we_o will_v therefore_o in_o this_o chapter_n say_v some_o what_o in_o justification_n thereof_o for_o if_o it_o shall_v appear_v that_o nothing_o be_v do_v therein_o which_o be_v not_o warrant_v by_o the_o write_a word_n it_o will_v appear_v how_o little_a reason_n they_o have_v to_o term_v that_o impious_a idolatry_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o indeed_o but_o religious_a piety_n 2._o howbeit_o we_o be_v first_o to_o forewarn_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o end_n he_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o the_o name_n of_o adoration_n that_o adoration_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v two_o signification_n in_o ●_o 1._o paral._n ult._n v._n 28._o gen._n 2._o v._n 7._o g●n_n 27._o v._n 28._o gen._n 49._o v._o ●_o the_o one_o it_o appertain_v to_o god_n alone_o in_o the_o other_o it_o may_v without_o any_o sin_n at_o all_o yea_o with_o great_a merit_n be_v give_v to_o man_n and_o of_o adoration_n in_o both_o sense_n be_v verify_v those_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o adore_v first_o god_n and_o then_o the_o king_n many_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v which_o approve_v this_o adoration_n of_o man_n of_o which_o only_o we_o now_o treat_v for_o this_o adoration_n only_o be_v exhibit_v to_o the_o pope_n &_o not_o that_o other_o which_o belong_v only_o to_o god_n and_o it_o be_v exhibit_v unto_o he_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n whereas_o the_o other_o can_v be_v exhibit_v but_o to_o the_o true_a god_n himself_o now_o there_o be_v four_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o evident_o prove_v that_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o only_o lawful_a but_o also_o dutiful_a 3._o the_o first_o testimony_n be_v that_o which_o the_o phophet_n i_o say_v record_v in_o these_o word_n 14._o isaiae_n 45._o v._o 14._o thus_o say_v our_o lord_n the_o labour_n of_o egypt_n &_o the_o merchandise_n of_o ethiopia_n &_o the_o eminent_a man_n of_o the_o sabean_o shall_v come_v unto_o thou_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v thou_o they_o shall_v follow_v thou_o they_o shall_v go_v with_o their_o hand_n manacle_v or_o bind_v in_o chain_n and_o they_o shall_v adore_v thou_o and_o make_v supplication_n unto_o thou_o it_o be_v maniste_v that_o the_o prophet_n in_o this_o place_n speak_v not_o to_o christ_n but_o to_o the_o church_n for_o all_o the_o verb_n and_o pronowne_v in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n be_v of_o the_o feminine_a gender_n and_o not_o of_o the_o masculine_a beside_o it_o appear_v evident_o by_o all_o that_o go_v before_o these_o word_n and_o all_o that_o follow_v that_o this_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o prophet_n therefore_o say_v that_o the_o labour_n &_o negotiation_n that_o be_v the_o riches_n get_v together_o by_o labour_n and_o negotiation_n of_o egypt_n and_o ethiopia_n and_o the_o eminent_a person_n of_o the_o sabean_o by_o who_o be_v understand_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v pass_v over_o to_o the_o church_n and_o they_o sh●lbe_n the_o church_n and_o they_o shall_v walk_v after_o the_o church_n in_o manacle_n by_o which_o be_v signify_v ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v adore_v the_o church_n and_o make_v supplication_n to_o she_o 4._o and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n in_o the_o last_o conjugation_n as_o it_o be_v use_v here_o and_o in_o a_o manner_n every_o where_o else_o signifi_v to_o prostrate_v one_o self_n before_o another_o not_o howsoever_o but_o by_o way_n of_o ador_n ation_n as_o all_o that_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n know_v in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o adoration_n do_v only_o to_o god_n be_v often_o express_v by_o this_o word_n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n they_o shall_v prostrate_v themselves_o before_o thou_o thereby_o to_o exibite_v adoration_n unto_o thou_o we_o have_v therefore_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o ●rispinum_fw-la calu._n eomment_fw-fr in_o isa_n 45._o v._n 14._o edit_n ann_n 1559._o gen_n apud_n joan._n ●rispinum_fw-la the_o ministerial_a head_n thereof_o not_o only_o may_v but_o must_v be_v adore_v unless_o we_o will_v make_v god_n to_o falsify_v his_o promise_n but_o the_o crafty_a deal_n of_o caluin_n here_o be_v to_o be_v detect_v who_o to_o abuse_v the_o reader_n leave_v out_o in_o his_o latin_a translation_n twice_o the_o pronowne_n te_fw-mi that_o this_o adoration_n may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o church_n but_o either_o to_o god_n or_o to_o christ_n for_o he_o translate_v not_o adorabunt-te_a &_o obsecrabunt_fw-la ie_fw-fr but_o thus_o adorabunt_fw-la atque_fw-la obsecrabunt_fw-la whereas_o in_o the_o hebrew_n the_o particle_n te_o be_v twice_o put_v in_o the_o terminine_n gender_n so_o as_o this_o adoration_n and_o obsecration_n must_v needs_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o those_o of_o genena_n dare_v not_o omit_v the_o same_o neither_o in_o their_o french_a bibles_n not_o in_o their_o corrupt_a translation_n which_o they_o call_v vatublus_a no_o nor_o culuin_n himself_o
assemble_v together_o to_o 13._o calu._n eadem_fw-la sect_n 13._o discern_v the_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n then_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v attempt_v it_o at_o home_n 2._o the_o second_o thing_n which_o our_o adversary_n grant_v be_v that_o general_n counsel_n ●_o mat._n 18._o v._n 20._o calu._n c._n 6._o citato_fw-la sect_n 2._o 6._o 9_o sequent_a beza_n 3._o volume_n tract_n theol._n tract_n 6._o de_fw-fr eccles_n notis_fw-la pag._n 1._o 8._o 〈◊〉_d ann_n 19●●_n calu._n l._n 4_o inst_z cap._n 9_o sect_n ●_o when_o they_o be_v assemble_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o confess_v that_o christ_n promise_v this_o to_o two_o or_o three_o assemble_v together_o in_o his_o name_n thus_o caluin_n and_o he_o add_v that_o they_o may_v err_v when_o they_o be_v not_o call●d_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o not_o catholic_a do_v ever_o deny_v as_o will_v appear_v hereafter_o 4._o the_o three_o thing_n which_o they_o admit_v be_v that_o the_o first_o general_n counsel_n be_v lawful_o assemble_v and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n thus_o beza_n express_o who_o admit_v also_o the_o five_o &_o sixth_o general_a council_n &_o he_o say_v that_o all_o those_o of_o his_o religion_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n caluin_n also_o of_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n write_v thus_o i_o reverence_v they_o from_o my_o hart_n and_o with_o they_o to_o be_v have_v in_o their_o due_a honour_n 8._o calu._n eod●_fw-fr c._n 9_o sect_n 8._o with_o all_o man_n and_o a_o little_a after_o when_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n he_o say_v that_o beside_o those_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n to_o wit_n nic●num_n constantinopolitanun_n the_o 1._o ephesine_n &_o chalcedonerse_n he_o admit_v also_o such_o other_o ancient_a counsel_n the_o which_o can_v be_v understand_v 9_o eodem_fw-la c._n 9_o sect_n 9_o but_o of_o the_o five_o and_o sixth_o for_o a_o little_a after_o he_o plain_o reject_v the_o seven_o 5._o here_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v note_v that_o luther_n in_o the_o beginning_n reject_v whole_o angliae_fw-la luth._o in_o l._n contra_fw-la regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la all_o general_a counsel_n but_o the_o caluinist_n afterward_o by_o reason_n of_o seruetus_fw-la and_o other_o antitrinitarians_a be_v force_v to_o admit_v the_o first_o four_o counsel_n moreover_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o vbiquitarian_n lutheran_n who_o confund_v the_o property_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o admit_v also_o the_o five_o &_o sixth_o and_o these_o thing_n even_o the_o caluinist_n themselves_o do_v grant_v unto_o us._n 6._o but_o catholic_n teach_v these_o five_o thing_n of_o the_o general_a counsel_n the_o first_o be_v that_o a_o general_a council_n can_v without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n make_v any_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o her_o office_n be_v to_o explicate_v clear_o and_o propose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o the_o which_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o a_o lawful_a general_a council_n define_v nothing_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o either_o be_v not_o extant_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o 4._o council_n trident._n sess_v 4._o may_v not_o be_v gather_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o last_o may_v not_o evident_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o both_o the_o which_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v manifest_o profess_v for_o now_o we_o must_v not_o expect_v new_a revelation_n fine_a calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z c_o 8._o s●ct_n 10._o in_o fine_a from_o heaven_n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a slander_n that_o caluin_n say_v that_o catholic_n teach_v that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o catholic_n despise_v the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v coin_n at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n new_a point_n of_o faith_n 7._o the_o second_o be_v that_o we_o acknowledge_v 3._o s._n aug._n tun_n 7._o de_fw-fr baptis_n count_n donat_n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o that_o general_n counsel_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n which_o do_v not_o belong_v unto_o our_o faith_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n say_v s._n augustine_n one_o full_a and_o perfect_a council_n may_v be_v correct_v by_o another_o not_o in_o faith_n the_o which_o be_v never_o change_v but_o in_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n the_o which_o according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o time_n both_o be_v and_o shall_v often_o be_v change_v whereupon_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o write_v that_o thing_n ordain_v before_o may_v be_v change_v by_o those_o which_o come_v after_o when_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o be_v open_v and_o make_v know_v which_o before_o be_v hide_v and_o secret_a for_o the_o experience_n of_o new_a matter_n which_o happen_v may_v change_v or_o correct_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n &_o constitutious_a but_o it_o can_v alter_v and_o change_v matter_n of_o faith_n 8._o wherefore_o caluin_n wrongful_o object_v against_o we_o that_o s._n leo_n the_o 11_o cal._n l._n 40._o just_a c._n 9_o sect_n 11_o pope_n reprehend_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n see_v that_o caluin_n himself_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o to_o appertain_v nothing_o to_o faith_n which_o s._n leo_n reprehend_v and_o he_o also_o confess_v that_o catholic_n teach_v that_o counsel_n may_v err_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o nothing_o concern_v faith_n and_o no_o less_o foolish_o caluin_n reprehend_v the_o first_o council_n of_o 17._o cal●_n eod●_fw-fr c._n 9_o sect_n 17._o nice_a about_o matter_n which_o do_v not_o belong_v unto_o faith_n 9_o the_o three_o be_v that_o we_o acknowledge_v those_o counsel_n may_v err_v which_o either_o be_v not_o lawful_o assemble_v or_o do_v not_o proceed_v lawful_o in_o their_o business_n they_o have_v in_o hand_n for_o such_o counsel_n indeed_o be_v not_o assemble_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o council_n of_o the_o arian_n hold_v at_o ariminum_n that_o of_o the_o eutichian_o at_o ephesus_n the_o seven_o constantinopolitan_a council_n of_o the_o image-breaker_n the_o which_o therefore_o our_o adversary_n do_v in_o vain_a object_n against_o us._n 10._o the_o four_o be_v that_o albeit_o a_o council_n be_v lawful_o assemble_v and_o seem_v to_o proceed_v orderly_o the_o definition_n notwithstanding_o thereof_o will_v not_o be_v altogether_o certain_a according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o many_o catholic_n unless_o they_o have_v their_o approbation_n from_o the_o 11._o vide_fw-la bell._n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccles_n milit_fw-la cap._n 11._o bishop_n of_o rome_n if_o he_o be_v not_o present_a at_o the_o council_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o before_o that_o the_o council_n be_v approve_v and_o allow_v of_o by_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v as_o yet_o a_o unperfect_a body_n of_o christ_n without_o any_o visible_a head_n and_o such_o a_o body_n may_v stumble_v &_o controu_n council_n trid._n sess_v ult._n infine_v conc._n nicaenum●_n dequo_fw-la baron_n tun_n 3._o anno_fw-la 325._o n._n 111._o chalced._n act_n 1._o in_o fi●e_n in_o epist_n ●d_a leon●m_fw-la papam_fw-la sexta._fw-la synod_n in_o ep_n ad●dgatho●en_fw-mi papam_fw-la suprac_n 17._o huius_fw-la controu_n fall_v 11._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n demand_v her_o confirmation_n from_o pius_n 4._o who_o solemn_o afterward_o confirm_v it_o the_o which_o also_o the_o other_o ancient_a counsel_n demand_v yea_o even_o those_o which_o our_o adversary_n do_v admit_v as_o for_o example_n the_o first_o nicene_n council_n that_o of_o chalcedon_n the_o sixth_o synod_n to_o omit_v other_o late_a counsel_n 12._o the_o five_o be_v that_o we_o affirm_v a_o general_n council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o it_o be_v altogether_o necessary_a that_o there_o be_v some_o supreme_a judgement_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n whereunto_o all_o shall_v submit_v themselves_o and_o believe_v assure_o in_o all_o matter_n in_o controversy_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o supreme_a judgement_n but_o this_o 13._o moreover_o we_o see_v that_o even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n till_o now_o all_o heresy_n and_o controversy_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n have_v be_v still_o end_v and_o take_v away_o by_o the_o general_a counsel_n wherefore_o they_o who_o deny_v this_o do_v open_a and_o make_v way_n for_o all_o old_a heresy_n the_o which_o when_o our_o adversary_n have_v learn_v by_o experience_n in_o the_o antitrinitarians_a anabaptiste_n vbiquitarian_n and_o such_o other_o sect_n they_o be_v force_v to_o admit_v cap._n §._o 4._o h●iu●_fw-la cap._n those_o six_o more_o ancient_a counsel_n as_o we_o say_v before_o but_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o general_n counsel_n be_v alike_o and_o equal_a 14._o final_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o 13._o
calu._n l._n 4●_n inst_z cap._n 9_o sect_n 13._o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v no_o better_a or_o sure_a remedy_n to_o root_v out_o and_o take_v away_o all_o heresy_n therefore_o either_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a remedy_n or_o else_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o the_o which_o to_o affirm_v be_v to_o deny_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o his_o love_n to_o his_o church_n 15._o moreover_o that_o which_o our_o adversary_n say_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o late_a counsel_n be_v not_o lawful_a assembly_n because_o they_o have_v not_o observe_v due_a manner_n and_o form_n be_v a_o false_a lie_n first_o because_o it_o do_v not_o become_v every_o private_a man_n to_o be_v judge_n in_o this_o matter_n but_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n who_o have_v receyve_v for_o so_o many_o year_n all_o these_o as_o lawful_a counsel_n we_o must_v not_o call_v they_o any_o more_o in_o question_n 16._o and_o see_v that_o our_o adversary_n do_v embrace_v and_o approve_v the_o six_o first_o counsel_n the_o lawful_a form_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o counsel_n be_v to_o be_v fetch_v from_o they_o the_o which_o be_v exact_o observe_v in_o the_o late_a counsel_n as_o baronius_n show_v evident_o in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o first_o six_o counsel_n but_o caluin_n acknowledge_v no_o ●_z calu._n c._n 9_o citato_fw-la sect_n ●_z lawful_a manner_n of_o any_o synodical_a assembly_n nor_o any_o such_o to_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n but_o where_o all_o thing_n be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n only_o reject_v all_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n but_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o the_o tradition_n seq_n go●t_fw-la 1._o c._n 18._o &_o seq_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v as_o a_o principal_a and_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 17._o yea_o even_o this_o be_v the_o only_a cause_n why_o s._n cyprian_n and_o so_o many_o other_o holy_a bishop_n err_v in_o the_o african_a counsel_n when_o they_o determine_v that_o all_o those_o who_o be_v christen_v by_o heretic_n shall_v be_v baptize_v again_o for_o they_o confirm_v this_o their_o opinion_n very_o probable_o by_o many_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o they_o reject_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o 9_o lyrin_fw-mi lib._n contra_fw-la heraes_fw-la c._n 9_o &_o 10._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o the_o baptism_n contra_fw-la donatist_n l._n 2._o c._n 7._o in_o fine_a &_o cap._n 8._o &_o 9_o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o l._n 3_o de_fw-fr bapt_v contra_fw-la donatist_n c._n 4._o &_o l._n 3._o citato_fw-la c._n 2._o 5._o 6._o 7._o 8._o &_o 9_o loan_n 14._o ●_o 9_o church_n the_o which_o they_o know_v very_o well_o be_v opposite_a to_o this_o error_n as_o though_o it_o have_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o s._n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n declare_v very_o well_o and_o before_o he_o s._n augustine_n in_o many_o place_n 18._o and_o that_o which_o be_v more_o s._n augustine_n manifest_o write_v that_o he_o have_v be_v of_o s._n cyprian_n opinion_n by_o reason_n of_o those_o probable_a reason_n which_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n have_v define_v the_o contrary_a and_o as_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n teach_v at_o large_a they_o most_o of_o all_o oppugned_a the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o same_o error_n with_o s._n cyprian_n object_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o our_o adversary_n now_o adays_o object_n against_o us●_n god_n say_v i_o be_o the_o truth_n he_o do_v not_o say_v i_o be_o the_o custom_n unto_o who_o s._n augustine_n answer_v very_o well_o that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o opposite_a to_o truth_n but_o it_o be_v even_o truth_n itself_o 19_o our_o adversary_n argument_n be_v of_o small_a account_n or_o moment_n caluin_n bring_v in_o the_o example_n of_o caiphas_n and_o of_o the_o jewish_a council_n wherein_o christ_n be_v condemn_v the_o same_o argument_n beza_n 25._o bez._n in_o 1._o tim._n 2._o v._n 25._o also_o allege_v but_o who_o do_v not_o know_v that_o this_o be_v neither_o a_o general_a council_n whereunto_o christ_n be_v not_o call_v nor_o any_o ●ther_n true_a believer_n nor_o lawful_a in_o itself_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o assemble_v in_o the_o name_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v then_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o visible_a and_o militant_a church_n as_o also_o because_o it_o be_v call_v together_o against_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o wicked_a and_o curse_a synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o adhere_v unto_o christ_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o that_o other_o which_o be_v altogether_o deprive_v &_o have_v lose_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n be_v rather_o a_o fit_a church_n for_o satan_n and_o other_o infernal_a spirit_n and_o i_o marvel_v true_o that_o caluin_n and_o beza_n do_v allege_v that_o council_n as_o true_a and_o lawful_a which_o be_v assemble_v against_o christ_n himself_o as_o also_o by_o those_o who_o be_v not_o true_a believer_n ult._n ●o_o 15._o v._n 22._o psal_n 117._o v._n 21._o isa_n 9_o v._n 9_o &_o 10._o isa_n 6._o v._n 14._o dan._n ●_o v._o 26._o mat._n ult._n ●_o ult._n in_o christ_n yea_o who_o be_v filthy_o stain_v with_o the_o most_o heinous_a sin_n of_o infidelity_n as_o christ_n humselfe_n witness_v but_o we_o willing_o leave_v such_o a_o church_n and_o council_n to_o our_o adversary_n 20._o it_o be_v also_o manifest_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v receyve_v by_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v then_o fall_v from_o fine_a joa._n 14._o five_o 16._o calu._n c._n 9_o citato_fw-la sect_n 8._o s._n aug._n tun_n 6._o l._n 3._o contra_fw-la maxim_n arian_n episc_n c._n 14._o beza_n volu_fw-la 2._o tract_n theol._n tract_n 3._o de_fw-la pace_fw-la christianorum_fw-la eccles_n constit_fw-la cir●_n finen_n pag._n 118._o iuxta_fw-la edit_fw-la gen_n a_o 1558._o calu._n sect_n citato_fw-la rupel_n confess_v art_n 5._o in_o fine_a her_o faith_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v the_o plain_a contrary_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n shall_v remain_v with_o she_o for_o ever_o 21._o but_o neither_o be_v that_o other_o argument_n which_o caluin_n and_o beza_n use_v any_o better_a to_o wit_n that_o s._n augustine_n will_v not_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a against_o maximinus_n the_o arian_n for_o neither_o can_v we_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n against_o the_o jew_n not_o because_o we_o have_v any_o doubt_n thereof_o but_o because_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o admit_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n when_o that_o arian_n will_v not_o admit_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o do_v plain_o reject_v it_o s._n augustine_n shall_v in_o vain_a have_v urge_v the_o authority_n thereof_o for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o s._n augustine_n never_o have_v any_o doubt_n of_o the_o faith_n explicate_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o which_o even_o our_o adversary_n embrace_v as_o the_o most_o true_a word_n of_o god_n 22._o such_o as_o desire_v to_o see_v any_o more_o concern_v this_o controversy_n of_o the_o general_n counsel_n let_v they_o read_v bellarmine_n in_o his_o first_o &_o second_o book_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o coccius_n in_o his_o first_o tome_n the_o seven_o book_n the_o 21._o &_o 22._o article_n chap._n xi_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n now_o it_o remain_v we_o say_v somewhat_o of_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n and_o of_o their_o write_n both_o because_o they_o be_v in_o time_n past_o the_o chief_a member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n as_o also_o because_o in_o the_o particular_a controversy_n we_o shall_v often_o use_v the_o testimony_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n 2._o we_o know_v indeed_o well_o enough_o that_o they_o be_v man_n and_o that_o they_o may_v have_v err_v but_o neither_o be_v they_o god_n nor_o angel_n who_o accuse_v they_o of_o their_o error_n we_o know_v also_o that_o one_o or_o more_o of_o the_o say_v holy_a father_n have_v sometime_o err_v when_o they_o leave_v the_o more_o common_a opinion_n of_o other_o 3._o but_o we_o affirm_v this_o constant_o that_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v never_o write_v any_o thing_n with_o a_o common_a and_o unanime_fw-la consent_n that_o be_v either_o contrary_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o to_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n 4._o moreover_o out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o four_o diverse_a
a_o summary_n of_o controversy_n wherein_o be_v brief_o treat_v the_o chief_a question_n of_o divinity_n now_o a_o day_n in_o dispute_n between_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n especial_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n write_a in_o latin_n by_o the_o r._n father_n james_n gordon_n huntley_n of_o scotland_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n and_o translate_v into_o english_a by_o i._n l._n of_o the_o same_o society_n the_o i._o tome_n divide_v into_o two_o controversy_n the_o second_o edition_n ihs_n permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la m._n dc_o xviii_o the_o content_n of_o the_o ensve_a controversy_n controver_n i._o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o first_o controversy_n treat_v of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n of_o the_o scope_n and_o method_n of_o this_o treatise_n chap._n 1._o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_n chap._n 2._o of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n chap._n 3._o how_o we_o be_v to_o seek_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n &_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 4._o how_o we_o may_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 5._o of_o the_o hebrew_n text._n chap._n 6._o of_o our_o adversary_n new_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n chap._n 7._o of_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a edition_n chap._n 8._o the_o place_n of_o genesis_n she_o shall_v break_v thy_o ●head_n be_v show_v to_o be_v well_o translate_v chap._n 9_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n ipsa_fw-la conteret_fw-la etc._n etc._n chap._n 10._o that_o the_o write_a word_n be_v no_o fit_a judge_n of_o controversy_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n chap._n 11._o whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a or_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v chap._n 12._o whether_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v translate_v into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n chap._n 13._o that_o our_o adversary_n use_v many_o sleight_n in_o corrupt_v the_o word_n of_o god_n chap._n 14._o the_o four_o five_o and_o sixth_o shift_n that_o our_o adversary_n use_n in_o deprave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n chap._n 15._o of_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o shift_n chap._n 16._o of_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o shift_n chap._n 17._o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o first_o controversy_n handle_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n common_o call_v tradition_n of_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n chap._n 1._o out_o of_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a principle_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v clear_o convince_v that_o three_o be_v tradition_n chap._n 2._o it_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o other_o particular_a point_n of_o say_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n chap._n 3_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o point_n of_o say_v to_o be_v allege_v which_o be_v not_o where_o extant_a in_o the_o bible_n chap._n 4._o it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n chap._n 5._o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n chap._n 6._o it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n by_o the_o absurdity_n which_o otherwise_o will_v follow_v chap._n 7._o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n take_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v confute_v chap._n 8._o that_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n to_o the_o galathians_n the_o which_o our_o adversary_n do_v object_n against_o tradition_n be_v examine_v chap._n 9_o other_o objection_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o tradition_n be_v refute_v chap._n 10._o it_o be_v declare_v how_o we_o may_v know_v the_o apostolical_a tradition_n chap._n 11._o controver_n ii_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n treat_v of_o the_o property_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o property_n and_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o general_n chap._n 1._o that_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n chap._n 2._o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o continue_v for_o ever_o chap._n 3._o that_o this_o church_n which_o have_v always_o continue_v have_v always_o be_v visible_a chap._n 4._o the_o argument_n against_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v confute_v chap._n 5._o other_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v confute_v chap._n 6._o that_o this_o visible_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o say_v chap._n 7._o that_o there_o be_v no_o lawful_a call_n of_o preacher_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o visible_a church_n chap._n 8._o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n treat_v of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n whether_o the_o church_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o true_a state_n of_o this_o question_n chap._n 1._o the_o property_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o rule_v of_o our_o say_v be_v allege_v chap._n 2._o that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v not_o the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o say_v chap._n 3._o that_o the_o private_a or_o particular_a spirit_n of_o every_o one_o be_v not_o the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o say_v chap._n 4._o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o our_o faith_n chap._n 5._o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v confute_v chap._n 6._o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o only_o give_v a_o bare_a testimony_n but_o also_o authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n chap._n 7._o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v confute_v chap._n 8._o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n chap._n 9_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n treat_v of_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o false_a and_o true_a sign_n or_o mark_v of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n chap._n 1._o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o holy_a catholic_a &_o apostolic_a chap._n 2._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o property_n of_o the_o true_a church_n chap._n 3._o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o office_n of_o true_a church_n ch._n 4._o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n cap._n 5._o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v clear_o convince_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 6._o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o head_n of_o all_o other_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o chap._n 7._o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v confute_v chap._n 8._o of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o kiss_n of_o his_o foot_n chap._n 9_o of_o general_n counsel_n chap._n 10._o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n chap._n 11._o the_o first_o controversy_n of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god._n the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o first_o controversy_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o scope_n and_o method_n of_o this_o treatise_n all_o the_o controversye_n of_o this_o time_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o two_o head_n for_o either_o they_o be_v certain_a general_a principle_n &_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n or_o they_o be_v particular_a question_n appertain_v to_o the_o same_o among_o other_o general_a principle_n there_o be_v two_o about_o which_o be_v the_o great_a contention_n at_o this_o day_n the_o one_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o other_o the_o church_n we_o will_v first_o speak_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o afterwards_o of_o the_o church_n and_o last_o we_o will_v examine_v every_o particular_a controversy_n if_o god_n shall_v grant_v we_o life_n and_o health_n 2._o two_o thing_n do_v now_o adays_o hold_v many_o in_o error_n the_o one_o be_v a_o false_a opinion_n that_o many_o have_v who_o think_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o little_a importance_n whether_o they_o give_v credit_n or_o no_o to_o many_o thing_n teach_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o dangerous_a persuasion_n may_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n by_o that_o which_o we_o shall_v deliver_v concern_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n for_o thereby_o it_o shall_v evident_o appear_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v firm_o to_o be_v believe_v which_o the_o roman_a church_n believe_v and_o that_o without_o this_o faith_n no_o man_n can_v hope_v to_o be_v save_v the_o other_o be_v that_o such_o as_o desire_v to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a faith_n in_o every_o particular_a controversy_n be_v oftentimes_o so_o hinder_v by_o the_o sleight_n and_o falsehood_n of_o our_o adversary_n as_o it_o will_v
or_o marrow_n not_o in_o the_o leau●s_n of_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o sappe●p●th_n or_o root_v os_fw-la reason_n and_o a_o little_a after_o otherwise_o 6._o matt._n 4._o v._n 6._o even_o the_o devil_n himself_o speak_v scripture_n and_o all_o heresy_n according_a to_o ezechiel_n make_v unto_o themselves_o pillow_n which_o they_o may_v lay_v under_o the_o elbow_n o●_n every_o age_n 18._o ezec._n 13._o v._o 18._o 2._o by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v answer_n may_v be_v make_v to_o our_o adversary_n when_o they_o object_n against_o we_o that_o we_o affirm_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v imperfect_a obscure_a like_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n which_o a_o man_n may_v writhe_v which_o way_n he_o will_v and_o last_o the_o origin_n and_o spring_n in_o a_o manner_n of_o all_o heresy_n for_o we_o affirm_v this_o of_o the_o naked_a and_o dead_a letter_n alone_o destitute_a of_o the_o true_a sense_n or_o rather_o of_o the_o letter_n to_o which_o the_o heretic_n add_v their_o own_o perverse_a sense_n and_o meaning_n neither_o have_v our_o adversary_n any_o cause_n to_o wonder_v at_o this_o see_v s._n paul_n himself_o say_v of_o the_o bare_a letter_n alone_o that_o it_o kill_v and_o bring_v eternal_a death_n 9_o 1._o cor._n ●_o v._o 6._o 7._o &_o 9_o and_o damnation_n but_o never_o any_o catholic_a do_v ever_o attribute_v any_o such_o thing_n to_o the_o live_a letter_n which_o have_v conjoin_v with_o it_o the_o true_a and_o native_a sense_n and_o which_o alone_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o the_o word_n of_o god_n chap._n four_o how_o we_o be_v to_o seek_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v great_a contention_n beweene_v we_o and_o our_o adversary_n about_o the_o mean_n how_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a interpretation_n of_o the_o letter_n a_o thing_n so_o necessary_a to_o eternal_a salvation_n they_o teach_v diverse_a thing_n concern_v this_o matter_n but_o deliver_v nothing_o that_o be_v certain_a one_o assign_v more_o rule_n to_o this_o purpose_n another_o few_o but_o when_o they_o have_v say_v all_o they_o confess_v at_o last_o that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o which_o have_v not_o at_o sometime_o err_v in_o seek_v out_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o they_o gyve_v not_o their_o assent_n either_o to_o the_o ancient_a father_n or_o to_o their_o own_o master_n in_o all_o thing_n they_o teach_v or_o write_v nay_o they_o can_v assign_v any_o one_o who_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o to_o have_v err_v sometime_o nor_o dare_v affirm_v to_o be_v free_a from_o error_n see_v as_o they_o say_v every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o so_o at_o last_o all_o 4._o rom._n 3._o v._n 4._o thing_n be_v leave_v by_o they_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a 2._o but_o the_o catholic_n do_v proceed_v after_o another_o manner_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o certain_a &_o undoubted_a sense_n of_o the_o letter_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o particular_a man_n but_o from_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o especial_o from_o the_o judgement_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o holy_a and_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o trent_n teach_v very_o well_o for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n 4._o council_n trident._n sess_v 4._o but_o that_o it_o be_v more_o safe_a to_o follow_v such_o a_o interpreter_n as_o can_v err_v than_o such_o a_o one_o as_o err_v sometime_o or_o at_o leastwise_o may_v err_v but_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o her_o judgement_n see_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o ●oly_a ghost_n remain_v with_o she_o to_o teach_v 13._o matt._n 28._o c_o ult._n joan._n 14_o v._n 16._o ●oan_n 16._o v._n 13._o ●er_o all_o truth_n whereof_o more_o hereafter_o when_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o church_n 3._o it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o observe_v and_o ●ote_v here_o that_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n nothing_o either_o solid_a or_o certain_a be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o whereas_o all_o depend_v of_o the_o ●rue_a sense_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o with_o they_o ●here_o be_v no_o certain_a or_o sure_a mean_n by_o which_o to_o find_v out_o this_o sense_n it_o follow_v ●hat_n they_o call_v all_o into_o doubt_n which_o be_v in_o ●he_n scripture_n whereby_o who_o see_v not_o how_o much_o they_o injure_v they_o but_o contrari●yse_n according_a to_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n all_o thing_n be_v evident_a and_o certain_a which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n appertain_v either_o to_o faith_n or_o good_a manner_n the_o catholic_n have_v ever_o a_o certain_a and_o faithful_a interpreter_n to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o sure_o whosoever_o reject_v the_o sense_n which_o the_o church_n give_v and_o in_o place_n thereof_o substitute_v another_o altogether_o repugnant_a to_o it_o do_v all_o one_o with_o he_o who_o reject_v the_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v in_o place_n thereof_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a scripture_n of_o his_o own_o forge_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o less_o a_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o the_o letter_n which_o in_o these_o few_o word_n tertullian_n confirm_v out_o of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o sense_n adulterate_v or_o falsify_v be_v no_o less_o repugnant_a 17._o tertul._n de_fw-fr pr●sc_fw-la c._n 17._o to_o the_o truth_n than_o the_o letter_n or_o style_v corrupt_v 4._o and_o to_o conclude_v it_o may_v be_v infer_v that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o and_o none_o at_o all_o out_o 9_o marc._n ult._n vers_fw-la 16._o ●om_n 3._o v._n 1●_n heb._n ●●_o v._o 9_o of_o it_o which_o i_o prove_v thus_o both_o the_o scripture_n testify_v &_o all_o man_n confess_v that_o divine_a faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o such_o as_o forsake_v the_o roman_a church_n can_v have_v divine_a faith_n which_o whole_o rely_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o but_o mere_o humane_a see_v their_o faith_n be_v found_v not_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n interpret_v by_o the_o church_n which_o can_v err●_n but_o in_o the_o word_n and_o interpretation_n of_o luther_n &_o caluin_n or_o some_o other_o private_a man_n who_o as_o they_o themselves_o grant_v may_v err_v and_o be_v deceive_v such_o a_o humane_a faith_n then_o so_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a and_o only_o warrant_v by_o man_n authority_n can_v justify_v or_o bring_v a_o man_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n chap._n v._o how_o we_o may_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n all_o such_o as_o forsake_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o make_v little_a account_n of_o her_o authority_n be_v not_o only_o doubtful_a &_o uncertain_a which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n at_o all_o either_o of_o the_o whole_a or_o of_o any_o part_n of_o the_o letter_n thereof_o for_o whilst_o they_o go_v about_o to_o call_v in_o question_n and_o make_v doubtful_a certain_a book_n only_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n before_o they_o be_v aware_a they_o take_v away_o all_o authority_n from_o all_o other_o book_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n for_o whereas_o there_o be_v but_o one_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a canon_n of_o these_o book_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o be_v receive_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o can_v err_v our_o adversary_n reject_v this_o canon_n make_v all_o the_o book_n doubtful_a contain_v therein_o for_o no_o certain_a testimony_n can_v be_v have_v of_o these_o book_n but_o either_o by_o this_o canon_n only_o or_o by_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n but_o they_o neither_o admit_v this_o canon_n nor_o will_v stand_v to_o this_o unwritten_a tradition_n or_o acknowledge_v it_o for_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n 2._o now_o as_o for_o the_o canon_n late_o set_v out_o by_o themselves_o no_o man_n can_v safe_o believe_v they_o see_v they_o neither_o agree_v one_o with_o another_o nor_o with_o the_o ancient_a canon_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v any_o where_o find_v in_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n which_o as_o they_o teach_v be_v only_o to_o be_v believe_v neither_o can_v they_o bring_v any_o thing_n either_o concern_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n or_o any_o other_o ancient_a canon_n which_o they_o have_v not_o take_v from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o authority_n without_o the_o express_v write_v word_n of_o god_n they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a sufficient_a to_o engender_v faith_n so_o as_o even_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o adversary_n none_o of_o all_o these_o
can_v establish_v faith_n concern_v this_o matter_n 3._o john_n caluin_n indeed_o say_v that_o it_o fine_a lib._n 1._o inst_z c._n 7._o sect_n 2._o in_o fine_a be_v as_o easy_a for_o a_o faithful_a man_n to_o discern_v canonical_a scripture_n from_o that_o which_o be_v not_o canonical_a as_o to_o one_o that_o see_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o discern_v light_n from_o darkness_n and_o white_a from_o black_a but_o in_o so_o say_v 19_o see_v be●l_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la ver_fw-la deic_fw-la 17._o 18_o 19_o he_o contradict_v both_o reason_n and_o experience_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o old_a time_n there_o be_v no_o small_a controversy_n among_o the_o faithful_a yea_o and_o among_o learned_a and_o godly_a man_n concern_v many_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n yea_o and_o also_o even_o now_o among_o such_o as_o our_o adversary_n esteem_v faithful_a man_n which_o caluin_n petri._n calu._n pros_fw-la in_o ep._n lac_fw-la epist_n ad_fw-la heb._n &_o ante_fw-la ●_o petri._n himself_o in_o many_o place_n confess_v 4._o moreover_o caluin_v own_o follower_n well_o perceive_v this_o fly_v unto_o their_o own_o peculiar_a spirit_n by_o which_o they_o say_v they_o be_v chief_o persuade_v and_o move_v and_o not_o by_o the_o only_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n but_o these_o speak_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o 4._o rupell_v confess_v art_n 4._o in_o faith_n two_o thing_n concur_v one_o be_v the_o cause_n or_o origin_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n god_n himself_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o for_o we_o all_o acknowledge_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o assent_n we_o give_v by_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o chief_o persuade_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o other_o be_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v whereof_o we_o now_o dispute_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o induce_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o false_a &_o uncertain_a devise_n of_o man_n but_o the_o pu●e_n and_o sincere_a word_n of_o god_n only_o we_o ask_v therefore_o of_o our_o adversary_n by_o what_o express_a word_n of_o god_n he_o reveal_v unto_o they_o that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o canonical_a book_n and_o neither_o few_o nor_o more_o for_o we_o read_v not_o this_o any_o where_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o admit_v only_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n how_o can_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 1._o calu_n l._n 1._o instit_fw-la c._n 9_o sect_n 1._o then_o persuade_v they_o to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o we_o be_v not_o now_o to_o expect_v new_a revelation_n from_o god_n as_o do_v the_o anabaptist_n and_o libertine_n who_o for_o this_o cause_n our_o adversary_n condemn_v it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o if_o they_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v persuade_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o believe_v such_o book_n only_o to_o be_v authentical_a as_o they_o do_v say_v be_v such_o that_o they_o first_o show_v this_o to_o be_v a_o truth_n express_o contain_v in_o holy_a scripture_n which_o they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o do_v wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n with_o they_o either_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a 4._o innocent_n 1._o ep_n 3._o c._n ult._n con_n il_fw-fr 3._o carthag_n can_v 47._o s._n aug._n epist_n 335._o c●cil_n trident._n sess_v 4._o scripture_n or_o of_o the_o letter_n nor_o ever_o will_v be_v until_o they_o return_v unto_o the_o church_n again_o but_o we_o catholic_n be_v certain_a of_o both_o for_o we_o have_v a_o most_o faithful_a canon_n receive_v in_o the_o church_n more_fw-mi they_o a_o thousand_o and_o two_o hundred_o year_n ago_o confirm_v by_o a_o general_a and_o ecumenical_a council_n 5._o and_o this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o the_o discern_a of_o true_a and_o authentical_a ult._n lib._n 4._o inst_z c._n 1●_n sect_n ult._n scripture_n that_o short_a but_o pithy_a sentence_n of_o s._n augustine_n who_o caluin_n acknowledge_v to_o have_v be_v the_o best_a and_o most_o faithful_a witness_n of_o antiquiy_a sufficient_o testify_v say_v i_o for_o my_o part_n will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o i_o be_v move_v by_o the_o authority_n 5._o aug._n con_v epist_n manich._n c._n 5._o of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o place_n i_o will_v say_v more_o hereafter_o in_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o else_o where_o he_o say_v we_o receive_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n in_o that_o number_n of_o book_n which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a temp_n aug._n serm_n 10_o the_o temp_n church_n deliver_v so_o s._n augustine_n 6._o i_o know_v our_o adversary_n object_n many_o thing_n against_o many_o book_n contain_v in_o our_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n but_o their_o chief_a argument_n do_v not_o only_o derogate_v authority_n from_o those_o book_n but_o also_o from_o many_o other_o which_o they_o receive_v as_o canonical_a for_o they_o object_n that_o some_o father_n do_v sometime_o doubt_v of_o those_o book_n which_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v but_o they_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o some_o father_n of_o old_a have_v doubt_v of_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n and_o s._n jude_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n peter_n of_o the_o 2._o and_o 3._o of_o s._n john_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o of_o the_o apocalyps_n of_o which_o book_n they_o dare_v 3._o rupell_v confess_v art_n 3._o not_o now_o doubt_v especial_o caluin_n follower_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n 7._o they_o say_v further_o that_o in_o those_o book_n which_o they_o reject_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n obscure_a difficult_a and_o full_a of_o contradiction_n but_o what_o book_n of_o scripture_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v there_o in_o the_o which_o there_o do_v not_o occur_v sometime_o thing_n 16._o 2._o pet._n 3._o v._n 16._o obscure_a and_o hard_a to_o be_v understod_a do_v not_o s._n peter_n acknowledge_v as_o much_o but_o as_o for_o true_a contradiction_n there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o how_o soever_o there_o may_v be_v some_o thing_n which_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n may_v seem_v to_o imply_v contradiction_n yet_o indeed_o all_o thing_n agree_v very_o well_o together_o such_o a_o contradiction_n be_v oftentimes_o find_v in_o those_o book_n which_o even_o our_o adversary_n receive_v 3._o aug._n d●_n do●t_n christia_n l._n 2._o c._n 41._o &_o de_fw-mi ser_fw-mi dom._n in_o mont_fw-fr l._n 1._o c._n 3._o yea_o even_o in_o the_o ghospell_n themselves_o which_o for_o all_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v but_o humble_o sober_o and_o pious_o to_o be_v interpret_v as_o s._n augustine_n many_o time_n admonish_v 8._o to_o conclude_v all_o the_o argument_n that_o our_o adversary_n make_v against_o these_o book_n be_v full_o answer_v by_o catholic_a writer_n which_o have_v set_v out_o commentary_n coronol_n bell._n &_o gre●s_n contro_fw-la 1_o l._n 1._o c._n 7._o &_o sequ_fw-la 〈◊〉_d in_o s●●_n coronol_n upon_o those_o book_n to_o wit_n cornelius_n i_o ansenius_fw-la upon_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la joannes_n laurinus_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n joannes_n maldonatus_n and_o chris●oph●r_n à_fw-fr cast●o_n upon_o baruch_n and_o nicolas_n serarius_n upon_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o our_o adversary_n call_v apocripall_a to_o omit_v the_o most_o reverend_a and_o famous_a cardinal_n bellarmine_n and_o his_o champion_n jacobus_n gretserus_n as_o also_o james_n gordon_n lesmoreus_fw-la for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a only_a to_o have_v cite_v they_o see_v that_o i_o write_v only_o a_o abridgement_n of_o controversy_n &_o not_o any_o long_a commentary_n upon_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o content_v my_o sel●e_n to_o have_v show_v in_o this_o place_n that_o our_o adversary_n must_v either_o receive_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n approve_a be_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o be_v utter_o destitute_a of_o any_o certain_a and_o assure_a canon_n chap._n vi_o of_o the_o hebrew_n text._n our_o adversary_n when_o they_o be_v urge_v with_o catholic_a argument_n take_v from_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o fly_v to_o the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o to_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a persuade_v themselves_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o attain_v to_o the_o true_a and_o propter_fw-mi sense_n of_o the_o letter_n wherefore_o something_o be_v to_o be_v say_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o hebrew_n &_o greek_a text_n both_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o we_o grant_v indeed_o that_o when_o the_o latin_a translation_n be_v either_o ambiguous_a or_o less_o plain_a the_o hebrew_n text_n be_v well_o and_o profitable_o look_v into_o as_o also_o that_o
scripture_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n he_o be_v not_o a_o shame_a to_o write_v that_o baptism_n may_v be_v give_v in_o any_o liquor_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v it_o will_v be_v true_a and_o lawful_a baptism_n though_o it_o be_v give_v in_o milk_n wine_n yea_o in_o ink_n or_o any_o other_o filthy_a liquor_n thus_o be_v our_o adversary_n force_v to_o admit_v these_o absurditye_n lest_o they_o may_v be_v force_v to_o depart_v from_o that_o their_o principle_n of_o believe_v only_a scripture_n 6._o furthermore_o to_o the_o end_n that_o beza_n might_n more_o easy_o persuade_v the_o ignorant_a common_a people_n to_o admit_v this_o his_o strange_a paradox_n he_o add_v present_o a_o very_a grievous_a slander_n against_o the_o catholic_a doctor_n let_v water_n be_v want_v say_v beza_n 2._o beza_n ib._n epist_n 2._o and_o yet_o the_o baptism_n of_o any_o can_v be_v defer_v with_o edification_n nor_o must_v not_o be_v i_o true_o will_v as_o well_o and_o as_o lawful_o baptize_v in_o any_o other_o liquor_n as_o in_o water_n neither_o be_v the_o most_o superstitious_a divines_n of_o any_o other_o opinion_n in_o these_o matter_n thus_o far_o beza_n but_o these_o thing_n which_o he_o write_v be_v most_o false_a for_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a nor_o scholastical_a doctor_n baptism_n council_n trid._n sess_v 7._o car_n 2._o the_o baptism_n who_o have_v ever_o either_o think_v or_o write_v so_o yea_o the_o plain_a contrary_n be_v define_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n 7._o the_o fix_a point_n of_o faith_n be_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v only_o the_o necessary_a matter_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n this_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v also_o very_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n lest_o so_o great_a and_o so_o excellent_a a_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v profane_v yet_o our_o adversary_n will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v it_o effectual_o out_o of_o scripture_n only_o for_o by_o this_o word_n bread_n any_o kind_n of_o meat_n be_v oftentimes_o signify_v in_o scripture_n of_o wine_n it_o be_v f●●re_o more_o doubtful_a for_o the_o scripture_n make_v only_o mention_v of_o the_o chalice_n and_o not_o of_o the_o liquor_n which_o be_v in_o the_o chalice_n and_o cit_fw-la luc._n 22._o ●_o 18._o cal_n ibid._n in_o sva_fw-la harmonia_fw-la beza_n ep._n 2._o cit_fw-la caluin_n himself_o acknowledge_v that_o these_o word_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v speak_v before_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n 8._o the_o which_o when_o beza_n easy_o preceave_v here_o also_o be_v go_v about_o to_o bring_v in_o another_o error_n lest_o indeed_o he_o shall_v be_v fore_v to_o forsake_v his_o former_a principle_n of_o believe_v only_a scripture_n for_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o write_v that_o he_o err_v nothing_o from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n who_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n shall_v use_v instead_o of_o the_o bread_n appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n any_o other_o usual_a meat_n and_o instead_o of_o the_o wine_n any_o other_o ordinary_a kind_n of_o drink_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v one_o may_v consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n either_o in_o cheese_n flesh_n fish_n or_o egg_n as_o also_o in_o milk_n water_n beer_n or_o vinager_n or_o any_o other_o liquor_n which_o hitherto_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o in_o god_n church_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o beza_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o attribute_v this_o most_o absurd_a error_n of_o he_o to_o all_o the_o scholastical_a doctor_n for_o of_o both_o these_o error_n he_o treat_v in_o the_o word_n before_o allege_a because_o when_o he_o say_v the_o scholastical_a doctor_n be_v of_o no_o other_o opinion_n he_o speak_v as_o well_o concern_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o of_o the_o matter_n of_o baptism_n after_o this_o manner_n our_o adversary_n do_v force_v so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a error_n out_o of_o that_o their_o principle_n of_o believe_v only_a scripture_n whereof_o more_o may_v be_v allege_v which_o for_o brevity_n sake_n we_o omit_v 9_o but_o there_o be_v one_o thing_n i_o can_v let_v pass_n because_o thereby_o we_o clear_o convince_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o only_o contain_v un_fw-mi write_v point_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o which_o be_v more_o even_o in_o our_o adversary_n judgement_n they_o change_v and_o abolish_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v express_o command_v in_o scripture_n for_o even_o in_o the_o table_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v write_v by_o god_n own_o hand_n in_o many_o and_o manifest_a word_n the_o keep_n of_o 11._o exod._n ●4_n v._o 1._o exod_n 20._o v._n 8_o 9_o 10._o 11._o the_o sabbath_n day_n be_v command_v the_o which_o notwithstanding_o now_o all_o except_o a_o few_o anabaptist_n do_v confess_v to_o be_v abrogate_a by_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n only_o without_o any_o express_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n the_o anabaptist_n i_o say_v be_v also_o deceive_v by_o that_o common_a principle_n of_o our_o adversary_n of_o believe_v only_a scripture_n they_o go_v about_o to_o bring_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n into_o u●e_v and_o custom_n again_o and_o for_o this_o sabatharij_fw-la vi●e_fw-la prateolum_fw-la v._o sabatharij_fw-la cause_n they_o be_v call_v sabatharian_n but_o not_o so_o much_o the_o heresy_n as_o the_o madness_n of_o these_o man_n be_v condemn_v of_o all_o and_o namely_o of_o luther_n in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o sabbatharians_n in_o the_o seven_o tome_n chap._n v._o wherein_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n the_o three_o argument_n whereby_o we_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o authority_n 7._o co●cius_fw-la tom._n 1._o l._n ●_o artic._n u●timo_fw-la bellarm._n tom._n 1._o l._n 4●_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 7._o of_o the_o aunc●ent_a father_n who_o affirm_v and_o teach_v this_o in_o many_o place_n the_o which_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n as_o well_o the_o greek_n as_o the_o latin_n ●odocus_fw-la co●cius_n have_v very_o diligent_o gather_v together_o in_o his_o book_n entitle_v thes●urus_n catholicus_n and_o before_o he_o bellarmine_n do_v the_o same_o but_o lest_o we_o be_v long_o than_o the_o order_n of_o epitome_n do_v permit_v especial_o in_o a_o thing_n so_o manifest_a it_o shall_v suffice_v we_o to_o allege_v one_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o another_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n 2._o among_o the_o grecian_n s._n chrysostome_n be_v the_o most_o famous_a who_o do_v not_o only_o affirm_v it_o but_o also_o manifest_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o when_o he_o expound_v those_o word_n of_o the_o late_a epistle_n 14._o 2._o thes_n ●_o 2._o v._n 14._o to_o the_o thessalonian_o therefore_o brethren_n stand_v and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n he_o write_v thus_o hence_o it_o appear_v say_v s._n chrysostome_n that_o he_o do_v not_o deli●●r_v all_o thing_n unto_o they_o by_o his_o epistle_n but_o many_o thing_n also_o without_o his_o letter_n but_o as_o well_o these_o as_o those_o other_o worthy_o deserve_v thes_n s._n chrys_n hom._n 4._o in_o 2._o ad_fw-la thes_n to_o be_v believe_v therefore_o ●e_v esteem_v the_o tradition_n also_o of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v worthy_a o●_n credit_n it_o be_v a_o tradition_n seek_v no_o further_o thus_o s._n chrysostome_n but_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o 7._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 14._o sect_n ult._n s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la ba●t_fw-la contra_fw-la donat._n l._n 2._o cap_n 7._o apostle_n and_o consequent_o s._n chrysostome_n also_o who_o expound_v he_o do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o ceremony_n and_o custom_n but_o also_o of_o point_n of_o faith_n 3._o s._n augustine_n who_o cal●in_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o best_a and_o most_o faithful_a witness_n of_o antiquity_n write_v in_o this_o manner_n many_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o apostle_n writing_n nor_o in_o the_o ensew_a counsel_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o be_v general_o keep_v through_o out_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n they_o be_v iuge_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o commend_v by_o none_o but_o by_o they_o thus_o s._n augustine_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o ceremony_n and_o not_o of_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o in_o that_o place_n he_o prove_v against_o the_o donatist_n that_n those_o which_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o accustom_a form_n and_o matter_n by_o heretic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v again_o but_o none_o unless_o he_o be_v a_o anabaptist_n will_v deny_v that_o this_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n chap._n
vi_o wherein_o even_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n the_o four_o argument_n whereby_o we_o prove_v tradition_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o our_o adversary_n do_v affirm_v to_o be_v point_n of_o faith_n against_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n they_o teach_v and_o believe_v they_o without_o any_o express_a scripture_n for_o it_o can_v be_v find_v express_o in_o scripture_n that_o faith_n only_o iustify_v that_o there_o be_v only_o two_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n that_o none_o shall_v pray_v for_o the_o de●d_n etc._n etc._n for_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o many_o other_o which_o they_o teach_v against_o we_o they_o gather_v only_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o that_o by_o some_o false_a and_o very_o weak_a consequence_n but_o it_o be_v not_o where_o express_o write_v that_o faith_n only_o justifi_v that_o there_o be_v only_o two_o sacrament_n that_o we_o must_v not_o pray_v to_o saint_n or_o for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n 2._o moreover_o there_o can_v no_o catholic_a be_v find_v who_o do_v not_o receive_v and_o assure_o believe_v the_o whole_a authentical_a text_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n why_o do_v they_o therefore_o condemn_v we_o when_o they_o affirm_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v besi●●_n the_o text_n of_o scripture_n whereas_o the_o whole_a controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o be_v of_o the_o unwritten_a point_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o affirm_v &_o they_o deny_v 3._o our_o adversary_n be_v convince_v by_o this_o argument_n do_v now_o at_o the_o last_o confess_v that_o not_o only_o that_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v and_o believe_v as_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n 1581._o beza_n de_fw-fr n●●i●_n ec._n pag._n 137._o volume_n 2._o theol._n tract_n ●dit_fw-la a_o 1581._o which_o be_v express_o write_v in_o holy_a scripture_n but_o all_o that_o also_o which_o by_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o it_o 4._o but_o when_o they_o answer_v thus_o they_o be_v force_v to_o depart_v and_o forsake_v that_o their_o first_o principle_n whe●_n by_o they_o affirm_v that_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v express_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o that_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n 5._o furthermore_o not_o per●aving_v so_o much_o they_o join_v in_o opinion_n with_o we_o so_o that_o they_o must_v needs_o indeed_o confess_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v altogether_o necessary_a for_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o scripture_n do_v rather_o belong_v to_o tradition_n then_o to_o express_v scripture_n for_o that_o which_o only_o consequent_o &_o by_o reason_v &_o discourse_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o scripture_n albeit_o it_o very_o well_o and_o necessary_o may_v be_v deduce_v from_o thence_o be_v not_o express_o in_o scripture_n but_o only_o obs●urly_a secret_o or_o virtual_o be_v contain_v therein_o for_o no_o man_n can_v true_o say_v that_o the_o conclusion_n which_o be_v only_o infer_v out_o of_o the_o premise_n be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o same_o premise_n for_o otherwise_o our_o discourse_n and_o argue_v be_v vain_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n but_o therefore_o do_v we_o reason_n and_o discourse_n to_o the_o end_n that_o that_o which_o lie_v hide_v virtual_o in_o the_o premise_n may_v be_v express_o manifest_v in_o the_o conclusion_n 6._o and_o that_o we_o may_v allege_v a_o example_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o when_o god_n the_o father_n say_v this_o be_v my_o well-beloved_a 5._o matt._n 17._o v._n 5._o son_n hear_v he_o out_o of_o these_o word_n we_o may_v very_o well_o gather_v and_o by_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o receive_v of_o all_o yet_o none_o will_v say_v that_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v express_o in_o these_o few_o word_n and_o true_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v so_o fertile_a &_o plentiful_a that_o many_o point_n of_o faith_n do_v as_o yet_o lie_v hide_v and_o unknown_a therein_o which_o hitherto_o have_v never_o be_v gather_v together_o by_o any_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v contain_v virtual_o and_o not_o express_o in_o it_o 7._o moreover_o after_o so_o many_o debate_n and_o contention_n after_o so_o many_o book_n set_v forth_o against_o we_o after_o so_o many_o slander_n whereby_o our_o adversary_n charge_v we_o as_o though_o we_o teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v imperfect_a they_o at_o the_o last_o return_n to_o our_o opinion_n for_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v yea_o we_o willing_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o right_o and_o without_o error_n be_v deduce_v or_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v belong_v unto_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v contain_v in_o holy_a writ_n obscure_o not_o express_o virtual_o and_o not_o plain_o for_o in_o that_o god_n do_v reveal_v any_o thing_n in_o express_a word_n consequent_o and_o virtual_o he_o reveal_v all_o thing_n which_o necessary_o and_o without_o any_o error_n may_v be_v deduce_v from_o thence_o 8._o we_o grant_v also_o that_o the_o scripture_n consequent_o mediate_o &_o virtual_o as_o in_o a_o general_a principle_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n yea_o in_o that_o one_o only_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n in_o those_o few_o word_n also_o of_o christ_n 16._o luc._n 19_o v._n 16._o he_o who_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o if_o the_o collection_n be_v right_o frame_v as_o we_o have_v also_o say_v before_o in_o the_o 25_o chapter_n but_o when_o these_o thing_n be_v gather_v together_o which_o be_v not_o express_o in_o scripture_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o uncertain_a &_o doubtful_a without_o the_o authority_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o these_o collection_n do_v manifest_o convince_v the_o necessity_n and_o authority_n of_o tradition_n 9_o but_o that_o these_o collection_n may_v be_v uncertain_a and_o deceytfull_a both_o experience_n &_o reason_n teach_v we_o experience_n because_o almost_o all_o heresy_n have_v have_v their_o beginning_n not_o from_o the_o scripture_n alone_o in_o itself_o but_o from_o these_o collection_n bad_o frame_v and_o make_v for_o there_o be_v not_o almost_o any_o one_o heresy_n which_o be_v only_o ground_v on_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n without_o some_o other_o collection_n see_v that_o almost_o all_o heretic_n both_o in_o time_n past_a as_o now_o al●o_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v and_o gather_v their_o heresy_n from_o the_o scripture_n by_o certain_a deceytfull_a &_o sophistical_a argument_n arius_n for_o example_n out_o of_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o do_v gather_v 28._o joan._n 14._o v._n 28._o but_o bad_o that_o christ_n even_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n be_v inferior_a to_o his_o father_n the_o new_a arian_n out_o of_o those_o word_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o have_v strange_a god_n before_o i_o do_v gather_v but_o foolish_o that_o 3._o exod._n 20._o v._o 3._o the_o son_n be_v not_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o god_n so_o the_o devil_n himself_o against_o christ_n 6._o matt._n 4._o v._n 6._o use_v this_o reason_n it_o be_v write_v god_n have_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v of_o thou_o therefore_o cast_v thyself_o down_o headlong_o last_o all_o the_o argument_n indeed_o which_o our_o adversary_n at_o this_o time_n allege_v against_o we_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o all_o the_o error_n which_o they_o have_v invent_v do_v take_v their_o beginning_n and_o strength_n from_o their_o new_a illation_n and_o reason_n and_o not_o out_o of_o the_o bare_a and_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n as_o will_v manifest_o appear_v in_o every_o one_o of_o these_o controversy_n 10._o the_o reason_n also_o be_v manifest_a why_o these_o their_o collection_n and_o reason_n be_v uncertain_a and_o doubtful_a for_o in_o nothing_o can_v one_o more_o easy_o or_o more_o often_o err_v then_o in_o these_o illation_n the_o which_o may_v proceed_v of_o many_o cause_n either_o because_o the_o illation_n itself_o be_v bad_a and_o sophistical_a or_o because_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v gather_v be_v falsify_v by_o some_o false_a exposition_n thereof_o or_o because_o the_o proposition_n which_o be_v assume_v and_o adjoin_v to_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n be_v false_a and_o ambiguous_a or_o because_o one_o or_o more_o word_n in_o that_o collection_n be_v use_v doubtful_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o one_o sense_n in_o the_o premise_n and_o in_o another_o in_o the_o conclusion_n or_o last_o because_o there_o happen_v some_o error_n to_o be_v in_o the_o collection_n which_o make_v
●lla_fw-la verba_fw-la 1._o ●l_v cor._n 4._o v._n 6._o word_n of_o god_n but_o of_o this_o one_o point_n that_o we_o must_v not_o be_v puff_v up_o in_o pride_n as_o even_o caluin_n himself_o acknowledge_v 5._o but_o to_o omit_v all_o such_o thing_n as_o other_o catholic_a doctor_n have_v very_o well_o and_o learned_o write_v of_o the_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n yea_o that_o we_o may_v also_o grant_v to_o our_o adversary_n that_o this_o which_o they_o allege_v be_v the_o true_a sense_n they_o err_v very_o much_o in_o that_o they_o think_v that_o these_o word_n of_o moses_n belong_v unto_o we_o and_o that_o we_o be_v no_o l●sle_n now_o bind_v and_o oblige_v by_o they_o than_o the_o jeve_n be_v in_o time_n past_a for_o these_o word_n do_v no_o more_o appertain_v unto_o we_o then_o those_o of_o the_o same_o book_n of_o deuteronomy_n cursed_a be_v ●e_n that_o u●●_n deut_fw-la 27._o v._o u●●_n abide_v not_o in_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n and_o s●lfil●●th_v they_o not_o in_o work_n from_o which_o word_n s._n paul_n manifest_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v deliver_v 1●_n ad_fw-la gal._n 3._o l._n 10._o &_o 1●_n and_o free_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n jesus_n but_o see_v that_o in_o these_o word_n which_o they_o do_v here_o allege_v moses_n command_v that_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n shall_v observe_v &_o fulfil_v every_o word_n which_o he_o have_v command_v they_o for_o so_o it_o be_v express_o set_v down_o deuteronomy_n 12._o the_o last_o verse_n in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n and_o in_o all_o the_o bib●s_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o he_o present_o add_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v add_v or_o detract_v from_o all_o these_o he_o manifest_o command_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o whole_a moysaicall_a law_n and_o of_o all_o the_o sacrament_n sacrifice_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o command_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v add_v but_o also_o that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v detract_v of_o all_o those_o thing_n by_o he_o command_v wherefore_o if_o our_o adversary_n object_n against_o we_o that_o we_o add_v any_o thing_n against_o this_o precept_n we_o may_v more_o just_o object_n unto_o then_o that_o they_o detract_v far_o more_o than_o we_o add_v see_v that_o they_o neither_o observe_v the_o circumcision_n nor_o the_o legal_a sacrifice_n nor_o other_o ceremony_n which_o be_v so_o often_o and_o so_o straite_o command_v in_o deuteronomy_n it_o can_v true_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o this_o be_v to_o detract_v somewhat_o from_o those_o thing_n which_o moses_n command_v and_o therefore_o our_o adversary_n must_v needs_o confess_v that_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o consequent_o do_v appertain_v nothing_o unto_o us._n out_o of_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o follow_v that_o our_o adversary_n do_v very_o indiscret_o &_o foolish_o boast_v and_o brag_v of_o those_o word_n of_o moses_n for_o in_o the_o exposition_n thereof_o they_o err_v far_o from_o the_o truth_n and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o in_o the_o application_n when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v also_o bind_v and_o oblige_v by_o they_o 6._o our_o adversary_n take_v their_o second_o argument_n out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o salomon's_a 6._o proverb_n 30._o v._n 5._o &_o 6._o proverbs_n every_o word_n of_o god_n be_v fiery_a it_o be_v a_o shield_n of_o defence_n to_o those_o which_o hope_v in_o it_o do_v not_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o word_n thereof_o and_o thou_o shall_v not_o be_v find_v and_o reprehend_v as_o a_o liar_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o place_n make_v nothing_o against_o we_o for_o in_o that_o place_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o scripture_n only_o but_o of_o all_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v add_v to_o all_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n the_o which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v with_o a_o catholic_a faith_n as_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n for_o as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o our_o faith_n rely_v only_o on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o scripture_n only_o be_v not_o all_o the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o all_o tradition_n also_o which_o contain_v point_n of_o faith_n belong_v thereunto_o as_o we_o have_v sufficient_o 2._o supra_fw-la c._n 2._o prove_v already_o but_o they_o add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o be_v lyard_n who_o affirm_v that_o god_n say_v this_o or_o that_o which_o indeed_o he_o never_o speak_v and_o of_o this_o sort_n ●re_n those_o false_a prophet_n of_o who_o god_n by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n complain_v say_v they_o 21._o hier._n 23._o v._n 16._o &_o 21._o speak_v the_o vision_n of_o their_o heart_n not_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o lord_n &_o again_o i_o do_v not_o speak_v unto_o they_o and_o they_o do_v prophesy_v this_o place_n also_o may_v very_o well_o be_v understand_v of_o those_o who_o add_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n there_o be_v set_v down_o that_o particle_n ghal_o which_o often_o tymer_n signify_v contrary_a or_o against_o as_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v in_o our_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o argument_n chap._n ix_o wherein_o be_v examine_v that_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n to_o the_o galath●ans_n which_o our_o adversary_n do_v object_n against_o tradition_n the_o three_o argument_n our_o adversary_n take_v out_o of_o the_o first_o 3._o confess_v rup●l●_n art_n 3._o chapter_n to_o the_o galathian_o the_o which_o they_o have_v also_o add_v to_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n as_o invincible_a for_o they_o have_v omit_v their_o second_o argument_n as_o not_o strong_a enough_o for_o their_o purpose_n but_o thus_o they_o frame_v their_o argument_n the_o apostle_n 9_o gal._n 1._o v._n 8._o &_o 9_o say_v twice_o a_o anathema_n to_o those_o who_o teach_v any_o thing_n beside_o that_o which_o he_o have_v teach_v therefore_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v or_o believe_v but_o scripture_n our_o adversary_n have_v this_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n often_o in_o their_o mouth_n wherefore_o it_o shall_v be_v examine_v more_o exact_o we_o answer_v therefore_o tha●_n our_o adversary_n do_v err_v here_o for_o two_o reason_n first_o because_o our_o whole_a controversy_n be_v of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n but_o in_o these_o word_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o write_a word_n or_o of_o scripture_n but_o only_o of_o the_o word_n preach_v and_o deliver_v vi●●_n u●c●_n to_o the_o galathian_o by_o s._n paul_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n augustine_n far_o otherwise_o 24._o august_n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la ec●les_n c._n 24._o then_o our_o adversary_n dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n prove_v by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o admit_v and_o belieu●_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o example_n that_o those_o who_o be_v once_o orderly_o and_o lawful_o christen_v by_o heretic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v again_o and_o well_o true_o for_o that_o which_o be_v viva_fw-la voce_fw-mi deliver_v be_v a_o tradition_n and_o not_o scpriture_n moreover_o if_o the_o scripture_n only_o contain_v express_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o apostle_n will_v rather_o have_v propose_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n than_o his_o own_o preach_n see_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v manifest_o well_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n but_o his_o own_o preach_n to_o the_o galathian_o only_o but_o our_o adversary_n urge_v again_o and_o say_v that_o all_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o galathian_o be_v write_v either_o before_o that_o time_n or_o afterward_o by_o s._n paul_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n they_o say_v this_o but_o they_o prove_v it_o not_o for_o this_o be_v no_o where_o write_v in_o holy_a scripture_n and_o so_o while_o they_o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v write_v they_o coin_n &_o invent_v a_o new_a poyn●_n which_o be_v not_o where_o extant_a in_o scripture_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o all_o such_o thing_n as_o s_n paul_n viva_fw-la voce_fw-mi teach_v the_o galathian_o be_v write_v but_o we_o follow_v herein_o s._n augustine_n do_v infine_v 3._o aug._n tom._n 9_o tract_n 96._o in_o io._n &_o tom_n 7._o de_fw-fr ●nit_fw-la eccles_n c._n 21._o infine_v gather_v much_o better_a by_o these_o word_n and_o infer_v thus_o against_o they_o if_o there_o must_v be_v nothing_o believe_v but_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n preach_v to_o the_o galathian_o and_o that_o none_o know_v certain_o what_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o preach_v but_o by_o the_o tradition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n it_o follow_v manifest_o that_o beside_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v also_o believe_v
32._o christ_n have_v but_o one_o spouse_n and_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n but_o i_o say_v the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o christ_n &_o in_o the_o church_n so_o also_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n my_o dove_n and_o my_o persect_n be_v one_o 8._o cant._n 6._o v._n 8._o christ_n be_v not_o a_o adulterer_n neither_o do_v he_o beget_v any_o child_n of_o a_o adulteress_n for_o this_o cause_n say_v s._n cyprian_n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v a_o adulteress_n ●he_n be_v not_o corrupt_v e●cles_n s._n cyp●_n in_o tra●●_n de_fw-la unit_fw-la e●cles_n and_o she_o be_v chaste_a and_o a_o little_a after_o whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n be_v join_v to_o a_o adulteress_n he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o shall_v he_o ever_o attain_v to_o the_o reward_n ult._n s._n aug._n tom._n 9_o de_o ●ymh_o ad_fw-la ca●h_n lib._n 4._o c_o ult._n of_o christ_n who_o tear_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o al●ene_n he_o be_v profane_a he_o be_v a_o enemy_n he_o can_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n who_o have_v not_o the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n thus_o he_o which_o last_o word_n s._n augustin_n repeat_v out_o of_o he_o 2._o second_o he_o that_o be_v without_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v receyve_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n nor_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o life_n and_o oan_n rom._n 8._o v._n 9_o s._n aug._n tom._n 29._o tract_n 2._o in_o oan_n merit_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o who_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o he_o as_o witness_v the_o apostle_n s._n augustine_n declare_v this_o very_a well_o by_o the_o example_n of_o a_o man_n body_n who_o member_n can_v live_v unless_o they_o be_v join_v to_o the_o body_n another_o reason_n also_o s._n augustine_n allege_v take_v from_o the_o foresaid_a property_n of_o the_o church_n none_o say_v he_o obtain_v salvation_n &_o everlasting_a lyse_v but_o he_o who_o 19_o s._n aug_n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la ecc._n c._n 19_o hat●_n christ_n to_o be_v his_o head_n but_o none_o can_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v his_o head_n but_o he_o who_o be_v in_o ●is_n body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n so_o say_v s._n augustine_n 4._o three_o the_o name_n only_o of_o a_o mother_n do_v prove_v this_o sufficient_o for_o none_o can_v be_v conceyve_v nor_o bear_v without_o a_o mother_n and_o the_o child_n which_o be_v bear_v if_o it_o leave_v to_o suck_v the_o mother_n breast_n will_v perish_v for_o hunger_n by_o which_o argument_n even_o our_o wise_a adversary_n be_v convince_v for_o both_o caluin●nd_n ●nd_z beza_n do_v confess_v 1._o calu._n l._n 4._o nstit_fw-la c_o 1._o &_o beza_n cap._n 5._o confess_v art_n 1._o this_o that_o even_o the_o name_n only_o of_o a_o mother_n do_v convince_v that_o which_o we_o have_v say_v to_o be_v true_a yea_o also_o the_o scripture_n do_v often_o testify_v that_o out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n we_o can_v hope_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n nor_o everlasting_a salvation_n and_o that_o the_o go_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v always_o hateful_a and_o hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n first_o we_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o then_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o life_n everlasting_a because_o indeed_o without_o this_o church_n none_o can_v obtain_v either_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n or_o life_n everlasting_a chap._n iii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o continue_v for_o ever_o the_o second_o error_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v that_o many_o of_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o continual_o endure_v but_o that_o it_o sometime_o fail_v this_o error_n may_v also_o be_v easy_o refute_v by_o the_o foresaid_a propertye_n &_o office_n of_o the_o church_n for_o first_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n i_o will_v betrothe_v thou_o unto_o i_o for_o ever_o christ_n therefore_o do_v not_o betrothe_v his_o church_n unto_o he_o 19_o ose_n 2._o v._n 19_o for_o a_o few_o year_n only_o 2._o second_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o christ_n can_v be_v without_o his_o 5._o rom._n 12._o v._n 5._o body_n and_o true_o it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a thing_n to_o see_v a_o live_a head_n without_o a_o body_n 3._o three_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v teach_v in_o many_o place_n that_o this_o kingdom_n 36._o psa●_n 83._o ve_fw-la 89._o v._n 36._o of_o christ_n shall_v continue_v for_o ever_o as_o micheae_n 4._o v._o 7._o daniel_n 2._o v._n 44._o jerem._n 33._o v._o 20._o &_o 21._o luc._n 1._o 32._o &_o 33._o last_o christ_n swear_v in_o his_o holy_a one_o that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o his_o holiness_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v last_v for_o ever_o wherefore_o they_o endeavour_v to_o make_v christ_n himself_o perjure_a who_o affirm_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n sometime_o perish_v 4._o four_o the_o church_n be_v the_o house_n 18._o matt._n 17._o v._n 18._o of_o christ_n the_o which_o he_o build_v upon_o a_o rock_n and_o against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v 5._o five_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v be_v the_o 26._o 1._o cor._n 11._o v._n 26._o office_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n shall_v show_v the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n until_o he_o come_v god_n also_o give_v some_o as_o apostle_n and_o doctor_n who_o shall_v 11._o ephes_n 4._o v._n 11._o teach_v and_o rule_v the_o church_n until_o we_o meet_v all_o in_o christ_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o christ_n also_o send_v his_o disciple_n to_o teach_v all_o nation_n and_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n he_o add_v this_o promise_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o ult._n matt._n ult._n v._o ult._n you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n by_o which_o word_n as_o s._n hierome_n well_o note_v he_o show_v that_o they_o be_v to_o live_v always_o and_o that_o he_o be_v never_o depart_v from_o the_o faithful_a believer_n 6._o last_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o be_v conviuce_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o matter_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o holy_a fine_a calu._n lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 1._o sect_n 17._o in_o fine_a scripture_n do_v testify_v this_o in_o many_o place_n for_o caluin_n and_o beza_n to_o omit_v many_o other_o do_v acknowledge_v and_o prove_v this_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n see_v that_o say_v beza_n the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v continual_a it_o 1._o beza_n c._n 5._o confess_v art_n 1._o necessary_o follow_v that_o there_o have_v always_o be_v some_o to_o be_v find_v who_o do_v acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o king_n chap._n four_o that_o this_o church_n which_o have_v always_o continue_v have_v always_o be_v visible_a the_o three_o error_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v that_o they_o deny_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a for_o see_v that_o they_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o continue_v as_o we_o have_v declare_v in_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n and_o when_o we_o demand_v of_o they_o where_o their_o church_n be_v for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o they_o fly_v unto_o a_o certain_a invisible_a church_n which_o they_o say_v lay_v hide_v for_o many_o year_n but_o this_o error_n also_o be_v easy_o refute_v by_o the_o for_o say_v property_n and_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 2._o for_o first_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v visible_a 27._o 1._o cor._n 1●_n vers_fw-la 27._o for_o the_o apostle_n speak_v unto_o visible_a man_n when_o he_o say_v you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n moreover_o we_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o baptism_n and_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o eucharist_n 12._o 1._o cor._n 10._o v._n 17._o &_o 1_o cor._n 12._o v._n 13._o ephes_n 4._o v._n 11._o 12._o as_o witness_v the_o apostle_n but_o these_o sacrament_n be_v visible_a also_o in_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v doctor_n and_o pastor_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o saint_n until_o we_o meet_v with_o christ_n but_o such_o person_n be_v also_o visible_a the_o building_n also_o of_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a this_o consummation_n of_o saint_n be_v visible_a that_o work_n of_o ministry_n be_v visible_a which_o the_o apostle_n say_v shall_v continue_v until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n 2._o second_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o every_o kingdom_n comprehend_v in_o it_o a_o visible_a company_n of_o man_n who_o all_o acknowledge_v one_o
king_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o god_n describe_v by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n speak_v in_o this_o sort_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o man_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o say_v our_o lord_n the_o star_n of_o heaven_n 32._o jerem._n 31._o v._o 32._o can_v be_v number_v and_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n measure_v so_o will_v i_o multiply_v the_o seed_n of_o my_o servant_n david_n and_o the_o levit_n my_o servant_n but_o such_o and_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n of_o man_n can_v be_v invisible_a 4._o in_o like_a manner_n the_o prophet_n isay_n describe_v the_o say_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n with_o it_o thus_o write_v i_o will_v make_v a_o perpetual_a league_n with_o 9_o isa_n 61._o v._n 8._o &_o 9_o they_o and_o their_o seed_n shall_v be_v know_v in_o all_o nation_n and_o their_o of_o spring_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o people_n all_o that_o shall_v see_v they_o shall_v know_v they_o because_o this_o be_v the_o seed_n that_o god_n have_v bless_v where_o it_o be_v manifest_o say_v that_o all_o nation_n even_o the_o infidel_n assoon_o as_o they_o shall_v behold_v and_o see_v the_o church_n they_o shall_v easy_o know_v she_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n bestow_v upon_o she_o caluin_n himself_o isaiae_n calu_n in_o hae●●erba_fw-la isaiae_n acknowledge_v this_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o add_v that_o this_o have_v not_o only_o once_o be_v fullfil_v but_o be_v daily_o fulfil_v 5._o last_o if_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v sometime_o invisible_a god_n himself_o which_o god_n forbid_v we_o shall_v say_v be_v perjure_a who_o swear_v that_o the_o throne_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o kingdom_n 89._o psal_n 8●_n vel_fw-la 89._o shall_v be_v like_o the_o sun_n and_o as_o a_o perfect_a moon_n and_o that_o for_o ever_o but_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o perfect_a or_o full_a moon_n be_v very_o visible_a planet_n easy_o to_o be_v see_v of_o all_o man_n and_o not_o invisible_a 6._o three_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v that_o 15._o isa_n 2._o v._o ●_o mi●h_o 4._o ●_o 1._o psal_n 47._o vel_fw-la 48._o v._n 9_o dan._n 2_o v._n 35._o matt._n 5_o v._n 14_o &_o 15._o city_n which_o be_v situate_v upon_o a_o most_o high_a mountain_n yea_o upon_o a_o mountain_n which_o be_v place_v upon_o the_o top_n of_o mountain_n the_o which_o our_o lord_n will_v strengthen_v for_o ever_o whereof_o christ_n himself_o speak_v a_o city_n place_v upon_o a_o monntayne_n can_v be_v hide_v and_o again_o you_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n neither_o do_v they_o light_v ●_o candle_n and_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n but_o upon_o a_o cadelsticke_a that_o it_o may_v give_v light_n unto_o all_o which_o be_v in_o the_o house_n christ_n therefore_o have_v make_v his_o 2._o s._n aug._n tom._n 9_o in_o 1._o ep._n joan._n tract_n 2._o church_n not_o to_o hide_v it_o but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v perspicuous_a &_o manifest_a unto_o all_o heerupon_o s._n augustine_n what_o more_o say_v he_o shall_v i_o say_v but_o that_o they_o be_v blind_a who_o do_v not_o see_v so_o great_a a_o mountain_n who_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o a_o candle_n place_v upon_o a_o candlestick_n and_o in_o 1._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la ecc._n c._n 1._o another_o place_n he_o say_v that_o those_o who_o see_v not_o the_o church_n have_v rather_o as_o it_o be_v blindfold_o offend_v against_o this_o mountain_n then_o climb_v up_o unto_o it_o 7._o four_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o foresay_a office_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o church_n must_v necessary_o be_v visible_a which_o conceyve_v and_o bring_v forth_o infidel_n to_o christ_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o neither_o they_n which_o do_v preach_v be_v invisible_a but_o visible_a and_o the_o preach_v also_o be_v visible_a and_o not_o invisible_a that_o church_n also_o be_v visible_a which_o nourish_v christian_n with_o her_o public_a exhortation_n instruction_n and_o ministration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o good_a example_n which_o explicate_v and_o keep_v the_o 17._o luc._n 10._o v._n 16._o matt._n 18._o v._n 17._o scripture_n who_o govern_v and_o prescribe_v law_n and_o precept_n who_o therefore_o we_o must_v obey_v and_o she_o be_v visible_a unto_o who_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n all_o complaint_n and_o cause_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v and_o last_o she_o be_v visible_a of_o who_o in_o our_o adversity_n we_o must_v demand_v help_n and_o comfort_n who_o public_o confess_v christ_n who_o fight_v with_o the_o serpent_n and_o get_v the_o victory_n triumph_v against_o he_o and_o moreover_o she_o exercise_v all_o those_o office_n which_o be_v before_o allege_v 1._o supra_fw-la c._n 1._o 8._o five_o if_o the_o visible_a church_n shall_v once_o perish_v that_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v false_o i_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n for_o that_o church_n which_o be_v catholic_a or_o universal_a can_v be_v invisible_a that_o church_n which_o be_v dilate_v 33._o psal_n 88_o v._n 33._o or_o spread_v abroad_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n can_v be_v but_o very_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a and_o that_o not_o in_o one_o only_a place_n but_o in_o many_o and_o hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n the_o which_o be_v very_o visible_a planet_n and_o easy_o to_o be_v see_v of_o all_o neither_o can_v there_o be_v this_o believe_v communion_n of_o saint_n unless_o the_o say_a saint_n mutual_o be_v manifest_a and_o 26._o 1_o cor._n v._o 12._o 21._o 26._o visible_a one_o unto_o another_o see_v that_o this_o communication_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v consist_v in_o the_o continual_a help_n which_o one_o member_n affoard_v unto_o another_o but_o none_o can_v afford_v any_o help_n to_o that_o which_o be_v invisible_a and_o unknown_a moreover_o this_o communication_n of_o office_n be_v very_o sensible_a and_o visible_a that_o also_o be_v visible_a sever_v s._n aug._n tom._n 2._o ep._n 170._o add_v sever_v which_o be_v a_o corporal_a substance_n and_o general_o in_o many_o place_n wherefore_o s._n augustine_n say_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o thou_o to_o behold_v and_o see_v that_o city_n which_o be_v situate_v upon_o a_o mountain_n of_o who_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n say_v that_o it_o can_v be_v bid_v for_o she_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n whereupon_o she_o be_v call_v in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 14._o matt._n 5._o v._n 14._o because_o she_o be_v publish_v and_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n of_o who_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o to_o be_v ignorant_a and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n she_o can_v be_v hide_v hitherto_o s._n augustine_n 9_o six_o that_o church_n be_v visible_a which_o contain_v in_o it_o aswell_o the_o good_a 7._o calu._n l._n 4._o i●stit_fw-la c._n 1._o sect_n 7._o as_o the_o evil_a and_o aswell_o the_o predestinate_a as_o the_o reprobate_n as_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o acknowledge_v who_o will_v have_v the_o invisible_a church_n to_o consist_v of_o those_o only_o ●8_o matt._n 1●_n v._o ●8_o which_o be_v predestinate_a but_o that_o the_o church_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o aswell_o the_o evil_a as_o the_o good_a shall_v continue_v unto_o 7._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 1._o sect_n 13._o in_o fine_a &_o beza_n c._n 5._o suae_fw-la cons_n art_n 7._o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n those_o word_n of_o christ_n suffer_v both_o to_o grow_v till_o harvest_n do_v evident_o demonstrate_v unto_o us._n yea_o even_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o do_v plain_o confess_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v declare_v this_o by_o many_o parable_n it_o may_v therefore_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n even_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o invisible_a but_o also_o a_o visible_a church_n to_o wit_n wherein_o the_o good_a be_v mix_v with_o the_o bad_a which_o shall_v always_o continue_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 10._o seaventh_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v invisible_a and_o to_o affirm_v that_o it_o have_v whole_o perish_v and_o 3._o supra_fw-la cap._n 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o the_o which_o as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o be_v most_o absurd_a for_o this_o invisible_a church_n of_o our_o adversary_n can_v afford_v no_o help_n to_o any_o see_v that_o she_o be_v not_o know_v to_o any_o but_o only_o unto_o god_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n god_n know_v who_o be_v he_o for_o our_o adversary_n will_v have_v the_o
the_o sacrament_n but_o because_o there_o be_v no_o small_a controversy_n now_o a_o day_n concern_v this_o office_n we_o will_v brief_o dispatch_v it_o but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o which_o be_v in_o controversy_n may_v the_o better_o be_v understand_v here_o be_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v determine_v first_o that_o the_o call_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_o require_v to_o the_o end_n one_o may_v become_v a_o lawful_a preacher_n or_o administer_v of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o clear_a and_o manifest_a how_o shall_v they_o 5._o ad_fw-la rom._n 10._o v._n 15._o hebr._n 3._o v._o 4._o &_o 5._o preach_v unless_o they_o be_v send_v and_o again_o neither_o do_v any_o man_n take_v the_o honour_n to_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v cllae_v of_o god_n as_o aaron_n so_o christ_n also_o do_v not_o glorify_v himself_o that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v a_o high_a priest_n but_o he_o that_o speak_v to_o he_o my_o son_n be_v 7._o psal_n 2._o v._n 7._o thou_o etc._n etc._n wherefore_o he_o who_o without_o this_o lawful_a call_n and_o mission_n dare_v presume_v to_o intrude_v himself_o to_o meddle_v with_o these_o divine_a office_n prefer_v himself_o before_o christ_n our_o lord_n for_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o these_o office_n but_o call_v and_o send_v by_o his_o eternal_a father_n last_o if_o in_o humane_a and_o worldly_a matter_n none_o dare_v meddle_v with_o the_o affair_n or_o business_n of_o a_o prince_n without_o his_o licence_n and_o consent_n much_o less_o must_v any_o deal_n with_o these_o supernatural_a and_o divine_a office_n unless_o he_o be_v call_v and_o send_v for_o that_o purpose_n by_o god_n himself_o 2._o the_o second_o be_v that_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o calling_n by_o god_n the_o one_o extraordinary_a the_o other_o ordinary_a the_o extraordinary_a call_n be_v when_o god_n immediate_o by_o himself_o call_v any_o &_o in_o this_o manner_n god_n call_v moses_n &_o the_o other_o prophet_n &_o christ_n call_v his_o apostle_n this_o be_v call_v extraordinary_a because_o it_o seldom_o h●apneth_v it_o be_v term_v also_o a_o immediate_a vocation_n because_o it_o be_v do_v immediate_o by_o god_n himself_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n be_v that_o which_o continue_v always_o in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v do_v immediate_o by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o god_n only_o by_o their_o mean_n hereupon_o also_o this_o be_v call_v a_o mediate_a vocation_n to_o wit_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n this_o division_n be_v take_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n who_o write_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o apostle_n not_o of_o man_n neither_o by_o man_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o god_n 1._o gal._n 11._o v._n 1._o the_o father_n for_o by_o these_o word_n he_o show_v that_o some_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n be_v call_v to_o the_o divine_a office_n by_o man_n and_o some_o by_o god_n himself_o 3._o the_o three_o be_v that_o those_o who_o be_v take_v to_o ecclesiastical_a office_n by_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n they_o receyve_v their_o call_n and_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n for_o this_o ordinary_a vocation_n be_v not_o do_v but_o by_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o whole_a controversy_n be_v of_o the_o extraordinary_a vocation_n for_o those_o who_o in_o this_o age_n have_v bring_v in_o new_a opinion_n see_v themselves_o destitute_a of_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n they_o fly_v unto_o the_o extraordinary_a the_o which_o say_v they_o must_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o censure_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o they_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v destitute_a but_o we_o on_o the_o other_o side_n affirm_v that_o the_o extraordinary_a vocation_n also_o must_v necessary_o be_v confirm_v and_o approve_v by_o such_o as_o have_v ordinary_a vocation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o our_o adversary_n have_v not_o true_o this_o extraordinary_a vocation_n as_o afterward_o we_o will_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a but_o suppose_v we_o grant_v they_o to_o have_v this_o extraordinary_a call_n nevertheless_o by_o these_o ensue_a argument_n we_o will_v manifest_o prove_v that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v confirm_v and_o approve_v by_o those_o who_o have_v their_o ordinary_a vocation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 4._o the_o first_o argument_n s._n paul_n be_v immediate_o and_o extraordinary_o call_v by_o 1._o ad_fw-la galat_n 1._o v._n 1._o god_n as_o he_o write_v himself_o and_o yet_o he_o be_v send_v to_o ananias_n who_o have_v the_o ordinary_a vocation_n that_o by_o he_o he_o may_v be_v instruct_v and_o baptize_v and_o afterward_o 7._o act._n 9_o v._n 7._o together_o with_o s._n barnabas_n he_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o those_o who_o be_v the_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o the_o 3._o act._n 13._o v._n 3._o church_n last_o he_o write_v that_o according_a to_o the_o revelation_n which_o he_o have_v he_o 2._o ibid._n v._o 1._o &_o 2._o go_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o conser_v the_o gospel_n which_o he_o preach_v with_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o the_o same_o lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v run_v or_o labour_v in_o vain_a they_o therefore_o who_o refuse_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n albeit_o they_o be_v never_o so_o extraordinary_o call_v thereunto_o they_o do_v but_o labour_v in_o vain_a 5._o the_o second_o argument_n we_o must_v not_o easy_o believe_v every_o one_o who_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v extraordinary_o send_v by_o god_n according_a to_o that_o admonition_n of_o s._n john_n believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o prove_v the_o 1._o 1._o joan._n 4._o 4._o 1._o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n because_o many_o false_a prophet_n be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n but_o this_o proof_n or_o trial_n can_v be_v better_a do_v then_o by_o christ_n church_n which_o be_v as_o s._n paul_n write_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n the_o which_o also_o s._n john_n clear_o show_v by_o the_o word_n follow_v when_o he_o say_v he_o that_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n hear_v we_o not_o in_o this_o we_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o most_o certain_a rule_n whereby_o this_o extraordinary_a vocation_n be_v examine_v to_o demand_v whether_o it_o will_v submit_v itself_o to_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o will_v hear_v she_o or_o no_o for_o he_o who_o hear_v the_o church_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o true_a extraordinary_a vocation_n but_o he_o who_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o the_o false_a extraordinary_a vocation_n 6._o the_o three_o argument_n the_o holy_a ghost_n never_o contradict_v himself_o for_o otherwise_o which_o god_n forbid_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n but_o of_o falsehood_n for_o truth_n be_v never_o repugnant_a to_o truth_n but_o to_o falsehood_n see_v that_o therefore_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n be_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o extraordinary_a can_v be_v opposite_a unto_o it_o which_o be_v true_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o otherwise_o god_n shall_v be_v opposite_a unto_o himself_o which_o be_v impiety_n to_o think_v wherefore_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o extraordinary_a vocation_n must_v agree_v with_o the_o ordidinary_a and_o be_v subject_a unto_o it_o as_o also_o it_o must_v establish_v and_o confirm_v but_o not_o impugn_v it_o hereupon_o say_v the_o apostle_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o 32._o 1._o ad_fw-la cor._n 14._o v._n 32._o prophet_n if_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n much_o more_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n 7._o the_o four_o argument_n there_o will_v arise_v a_o great_a confusion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o every_o one_o be_v permit_v to_o preach_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n that_o shall_v affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v extraordinary_o call_v without_o any_o other_o examine_v or_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o so_o every_o fantastical_a fellow_n may_v free_o brag_v and_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v extraordinary_o call_v by_o god_n and_o under_o that_o pretence_n and_o title_n may_v preach_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o exercise_v all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a office_n 8._o by_o these_o argument_n some_o more_o 4._o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 3._o sect_n 14_o bez._n c._n 5._o suae_fw-la confess_n ●rtic_a 28._o bull_v decad_a 5._o serm_n 4._o learned_a among_o our_o adversary_n be_v convince_v do_v acknowledge_v that_o all_o extraordinary_a vocation_n shall_v be_v examine_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o christ_n church_n but_o they_o add_v moreover_o that_o this_o be_v true_a when_o the_o church_n itself_o
publican_n 18._o five_o the_o church_n have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o punish_v what_o will_v you_o 10._o 1._o cor._n 4._o v._o ult._n 2._o cor._n ult._n v._n 2._o 2._o cor._n ult._n v_o 10._o say_v the_o apostle_n that_o i_o come_v unto_o you_o with_o a_o rod_n or_o in_o charity_n and_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o mildness_n and_o in_o another_o place_n if_o i_o come_v again_o i_o will_v not_o spare_v and_o again_o that_o be_v present_a i_o may_v not_o deal_v hardly_o according_a to_o the_o power_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v i_o unto_o edification_n and_o not_o unto_o destruction_n 19_o six_o the_o church_n absolu_v bind_v and_o retain_v sin_n excommunicate_v 23._o matth._n 18._o v._n 19_o joan._n 20._o v._n 23._o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v express_o testify_v and_o our_o adversary_n do_v also_o confess_v all_o which_o act_n belong_v unto_o judge_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v none_o of_o they_o 20._o the_o second_o argument_n the_o holy_a scripture_n express_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n do_v sometime_o judge_v i_o indeed_o absent_a in_o body_n but_o present_a in_o spirit_n have_v 5._o 1._o cor._n 5._o v._n 34._o &_o 5._o already_o judge_v as_o present_v he_o that_o have_v so_o do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n you_o be_v gather_v together_o and_o my_o spirit_n with_o the_o virtue_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o deliver_v such_o a_o one_o to_o satan_n and_o a_o little_a after_o do_v not_o you_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o be_v within_o where_o the_o apostle_n 12._o ●_o cor._n 5._o v._n 12._o plain_o say_v that_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n judge_v those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n 21._o the_o three_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o the_o common_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o in_o the_o old_a as_o in_o the_o new_a 11._o num._n 11._o ●_o 16._o 17._o &_o 25._o deut._n 17._o ●_o 8._o &_o ●eq_fw-la 2._o par._n 19_o v._o ●0_n &_o 11._o testament_n for_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o chief_a judgement_n of_o all_o cause_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n himself_o first_o in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n and_o afterward_o it_o be_v confirm_v in_o deuteronomy_n in_o which_o judgement_n the_o priest_n do_v sit_v as_o judge_n and_o the_o chief_a judge_n who_o do_v give_v his_o sentence_n for_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v doubtful_a by_o the_o express_a commandment_n of_o god_n the_o common_a people_n be_v send_v to_o this_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o to_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o any_o 22._o moreover_o till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n this_o manner_n of_o judge_v continue_v in_o the_o old_a law_n for_o of_o it_o christ_n himself_o say_v upon_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n have_v sit_v the_o s●ribes_n and_o the_o pharisy_n all_o thing_n therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v say_v to_o you_o observe_v y●e_n and_o do_v you_o this_o council_n or_o judgement_n in_o the_o year_n follow_v by_o corrupt_v the_o greek_a word_n the_o jew_n call_v sanhedrin_n 3_o matt._n 2._o v._n 2._o &_o 3_o as_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o assembly_n or_o council_n 13._o in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n when_o there_o arise_v that_o controversy_n about_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o legal_a ceremony_n or_o custom_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o 28._o act._n 15._o v._n 28._o send_v their_o disciple_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n only_o or_o to_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o any_o but_o they_o assemble_v themselves_o together_o and_o define_v what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v it_o seem_v good_a say_v they_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o us._n for_o 4._o act._n 15._o v._o ult._n &_o act._n 16._o v._n 4._o the_o holy_a ●host_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n and_o s._n barnabas_n do_v diwlge_v and_o promulgate_v every_o where_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o same_o chapter_n and_o the_o next_o follow_v where_o these_o determination_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v decree_n or_o according_a 25._o act._n 21._o v._n 25._o to_o the_o greek_a phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o s●y_v thing_n already_o judge_v whereupon_o act._n 21._o vers_fw-la 25._o the_o apostle_n do_v say_v that_o judge_v and_o decree_a they_o have_v write_v this_o 24._o in_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o the_o next_o age_n the_o arian_n the_o macedonian_n the_o nestorian_n eutichian_o and_o other_o old_a heretic_n be_v judge_v &_o condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o general_a counsel_n hold_v at_o nice_a constantinople_n chalcedon_n and_o other_o 25._o last_o our_o adversary_n in_o their_o consistory_n and_o assembly_n do_v usurp_v unto_o themselves_o the_o authority_n of_o judge_n neither_o do_v they_o refer_v the_o judgement_n to_o the_o scripture_n alone_o or_o to_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o any_o 26._o yea_o caluin_n convince_v by_o these_o reason_n confess_v that_o the_o write_n of_o every_o private_a person_n must_v be_v submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n where_o he_o also_o conclude_v thus_o neither_o therefore_o say_v he_o do_v we_o condemn_v or_o diminish_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v we_o give_v liberty_n ●o_o every_o froward_a fine_a calu._n in_o antid_v contra_fw-la con●il_n trid._n sess_v 1._o in_o fine_a fellow_n to_o do_v what_o he_o listen_v i_o will_v to_o god_n they_o will_v show_v we_o such_o a_o church_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v paint_v or_o describe_v unto_o we_o we_o will_v easy_o agree_v about_o the_o honour_n thereof_o thus_o he_o but_o we_o will_v show_v in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n such_o a_o church_n as_o the_o scripture_n describe_v i_o wish_v also_o we_o may_v agree_v concern_v the_o honour_n and_o authority_n thereof_o 27._o there_o be_v two_o principal_a argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o tie_v unto_o man_n but_o ●udgeth_v free_o in_o whatsoever_o it_o please_v he_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o tie_v unto_o the_o church_n but_o the_o same_o argument_n will_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o they_o who_o write_v the_o scripture_n be_v man_n unto_o who_o according_a to_o our_o adversary_n opinion_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o tie_v i_o answer_v therefore_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o absolute_o bind_v or_o tie_v unto_o man_n but_o he_o be_v tie_v to_o his_o own_o promise_n as_o also_o to_o the_o word_n and_o promise_n of_o christ_n for_o neither_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o christ_n himself_o can_v deceive_v we_o in_o not_o perform_v their_o promise_n because_o as_o the_o apostle_n 2._o tit._n 1._o v._n 2._o say_v god_n can_v lie_v but_o god_n have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o his_o church_n not_o only_o one_o or_o two_o day_n or_o one_o year_n but_o even_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o remain_v ult._n math._n vit_fw-mi v._o ult._n and_o stay_v with_o we_o not_o for_o one_o or_o two_o year_n only_o but_o everlasting_o it_o be_v needful_a therefore_o that_o he_o perform_v and_o stand_v to_o his_o promise_n 28._o the_o second_o argument_n if_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v say_v of_o the_o church_n as_o judge_n be_v true_a it_o will_v also_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v judge_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_n can_v be_v call_v in_o question_n or_o doubt_v of_o by_o any_o which_o profess_v christ_n for_o the_o divine_a faith_n can_v be_v without_o some_o word_n of_o god_n but_o where_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o judge_n but_o if_o of_o any_o one_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o it_o be_v write_v or_o not_o write_v there_o arise_v any_o controversy_n as_o for_o example_n of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o write_a word_n without_o doubt_n we_o must_v recurre_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o belong_v unto_o she_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o truesense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o exposition_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a 16._o joan._n 14._o v._n 16._o part_n of_o the_o write_a word_n as_o also_o of_o any_o doubtful_a letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o see_v that_o in_o time_n past_a there_o have_v be_v many_o controversye_n of_o diverse_a book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o particular_a chapter_n and_o part_n thereof_o as_o also_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o other_o
christ_n to_o s._n peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n but_o the_o beginning_n proceed_v from_o unity_n the_o primacy_n be_v give_v to_o s._n peter_n to_o the_o end_n that_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o one_o chair_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a and_o know_v hitherto_o s._n cyprian_n 11._o but_o now_o that_o these_o promise_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o belong_v to_o the_o person_n of_o s._n peter_n but_o also_o to_o all_o those_o who_o be_v to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o same_o office_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n we_o do_v thus_o clear_o prove_v and_o demonstrate_v first_o because_o s._n peter_n be_v here_o make_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o rock_n whereupon_o it_o be_v build_v but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n always_o remain_v therefore_o the_o foundation_n thereof_o must_v always_o remain_v see_v that_o nothing_o can_v continue_v and_o be_v without_o it_o foundation_n 12._o moreover_o those_o key_n which_o be_v give_v to_o s._n peter_n do_v remain_v always_o in_o the_o church_n as_o all_o our_o adversary_n confess_v ergo_fw-la he_o also_o remain_v to_o who_o these_o key_n be_v give_v for_o that_o authority_n or_o those_o key_n be_v not_o give_v for_o s._n peter_n alone_o but_o for_o the_o church_n which_o be_v always_o extant_a it_o therefore_o always_o retain_v those_o key_n and_o that_o authority_n of_o bind_n or_o lose_v man_n from_o their_o sin_n in_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 13._o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o s._n leo_n pontif._n s._n leo_n serm_n ●_o inamniu_fw-la assump_n suae_fw-la ad_fw-la pontif._n say_v when_o he_o write_v that_o s._n peter_n even_o to_o this_o day_n govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o his_o successor_n insomuch_o that_o his_o dignity_n never_o fail_v even_o in_o a_o unworthy_a successor_n but_o hitherto_o there_o be_v never_o any_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n acknowledge_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n beside_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o therefore_o be_v the_o only_a successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o supreme_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o roman_a be_v not_o only_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o perfer_v before_o all_o other_o even_o by_o christ_n himself_o 14._o the_o second_o place_n be_v feed_v my_o lamb_n euang_n joan._n 21._o v._n 15._o 16._o &_o 17._o euseb_n emissen_n serm_v in_o natiu_fw-la s._n joan._n euang_n feed_v my_o sheep_n in_o which_o word_n god_n commend_v to_o s._n peter_n not_o only_o his_o lamb_n which_o signify_v the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n but_o also_o his_o sheep_n to_o wit_n the_o pastor_n and_o father_n of_o his_o church_n first_o say_v eusebius_n emissenus_fw-la he_o commit_v to_o s._n peter_n his_o lamb_n and_o then_o his_o sheep_n because_o he_o make_v he_o not_o only_o a_o pastor_n but_o the_o pastor_n of_o pastor_n peter_n therefore_o feed_v the_o lamb_n and_o also_o the_o sheep_n he_o feed_v child_n and_o their_o mother_n he_o rule_v 15._o bern._n de_fw-fr consider_v ad_fw-la eugen_n l._n ●_o c._n 8._o s._n leo_n serm._n 3._o the_o assump_n sva_fw-la ad_fw-la pontif._n joan._n 21._o v._n 15._o the_o people_n and_o their_o prelate_n he_o be_v therefore_o the_o pastor_n of_o all_o because_o beside_o lamb_n and_o sheep_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o church_n hitherto_o eusebius_n and_o s._n bernard_n my_o sheep_n say_v christ_n unto_o who_o be_v it_o not_o ●layne_v and_o manifest_a that_o he_o do_v not_o assign_v some_o but_o all_o nothing_o be_v except_v where_o there_o be_v no_o distinction_n make_v thus_o s._n bernard_n and_o s._n leo_n peter_n do_v proper_o govern_v all_o who_o principal_o christ_n also_o govern_v 15._o furthermore_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o not_o to_o the_o other_o apostle_n see_v that_o christ_n ask_v he_o thrice_o do_v thou_o love_v i_o and_o moreover_o he_o add_v more_o than_o these_o that_o he_o may_v make_v a_o manifest_a distinction_n betwixt_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n 16._o final_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o this_o promise_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o appertain_v to_o the_o person_n of_o s._n peter_n but_o also_o to_o his_o successor_n which_o be_v to_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 25._o ephes_n 4._o five_o 11._o calu._n &_o beza_n ib._n confess_v rupell_v art_n 25._o for_o both_o the_o apostle_n do_v plain_o testify_v and_o our_o adversary_n do_v also_o confess_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n be_v ordinary_a and_o shall_v always_o continue_v and_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 17._o and_o the_o chief_a reason_n thereof_o be_v because_o we_o stand_v in_o no_o less_o need_n now_o of_o a_o supreme_a pastor_n than_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n while●_n yet_o the_o apostle_n be_v alive_a yea_o we_o have_v much_o more_o need_n thereof_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v still_o and_o always_o shall_v be_v some_o sheep_n of_o christ_n therefore_o there_o shall_v also_o still_o continue_v their_o chief_a pastor_n the_o rom●n_a church_n therefore_o be_v not_o only_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o that_o wherein_o s._n peter_n successor_n and_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n remain_v 18._o but_o these_o two_o place_n be_v so_o manifest_a that_o they_o can_v be_v confute_v or_o wrest_v to_o any_o other_o sense_n unless_o we_o till_o reduce_v all_o word_n to_o a_o metaphorical_a signification_n or_o other_o figurative_a speech_n the_o which_o be_v a_o common_a trick_n of_o our_o adversary_n when_o they_o be_v urge_v with_o plain_a word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o against_o all_o these_o falsification_n of_o our_o adversary_n we_o must_v always_o observe_v that_o rule_n of_o the_o 1●_n s._n aug._n tom_n 3._o the_o doctrine_n christi_fw-la l._n 3._o cap._n 1●_n catholic_a church_n take_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o must_v never_o depart_v from_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n unless_o we_o be_v force_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o more_o evident_a point_n of_o faith_n whereunto_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n do_v manifest_o repugn_v for_o otherwise_o if_o we_o may_v as_o often_o as_o we_o will_v refuse_v and_o l●ave_v the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n there_o will_v be_v nothing_o less_o certain_a in_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 19_o moreover_o it_o will_v be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o every_o one_o to_o fly_v to_o metaphor_n and_o improper_a signification_n when_o he_o be_v press_v with_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o here_o that_o shall_v force_v we_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o true_a and_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n none_o therefore_o but_o desperate_a and_o careless_a of_o their_o own_o salvation_n will_v give_v credit_n and_o believe_v these_o foolish_a toy_n and_o dream_n of_o our_o adversary_n invent_v only_o by_o they_o in_o hatred_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 20._o yea_o he_o will_v rather_o embrace_v and_o follow_v the_o uniform_a consent_n and_o understanding_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o of_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o many_o place_n do_v affirm_v that_o these_o 4._o bellar._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n c._n 10_o &_o 14._o coccius_n to._n 1._o l._n 7._o art_n 4._o two_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v literal_o of_o saint_n peter_n the_o which_o bellarmine_n and_o coccius_n have_v diligent_o gather_v together_o as_o many_o other_o catholic_a author_n have_v do_v before_o they_o but_o because_o this_o matter_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o manifest_a that_o even_o our_o adversary_n can_v deny_v it_o as_o we_o will_v plain_o show_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n we_o will_v not_o now_o spend_v any_o more_o time_n in_o allege_v of_o author_n 21._o but_o our_o adversary_n do_v here_o cry_v out_o and_o object_n against_o we_o that_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v sometime_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o sometime_o upon_o his_o confession_n as_o though_o forsooth_o there_o be_v any_o among_o we_o so_o foolish_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o s._n peter_n back_n or_o shoulder_n or_o upon_o s._n peter_n as_o he_o be_v a_o infidel_n or_o dumb_a and_o not_o rather_o upon_o s._n peter_n as_o endue_v and_o replenish_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n confess_v and_o profess_v open_o the_o mystery_n thereof_o wherefore_o it_o be_v all_o one_o whether_o we_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o s._n peter_n or_o upon_o his_o faith_n and_o
manner_n some_o forcible_a and_o convince_a argument_n may_v be_v take_v 5._o first_o out_o of_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o or_o at_o the_o least_o of_o the_o most_o part_n without_o any_o contradiction_n at_o all_o for_o if_o they_o have_v all_o err_v in_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o salvation_n the_o whole_a ancient_a church_n shall_v also_o have_v err_v the_o which_o even_o our_o adversary_n ●ont_fw-la cap._n 7._o huius_fw-la ●ont_fw-la acknowledge_v to_o be_v false_a as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o 6._o second_o that_o promise_n of_o christ_n vit_fw-mi matth._n u●t_n v._o penuit_fw-la &_o vit_fw-mi whereby_o he_o assure_v we_o that_o he_o will_v be_v always_o present_a with_o his_o church_n be_v proper_o make_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o same_o for_o he_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v present_a with_o those_o who_o he_o send_v to_o baptize_v and_o preach_v to_o wit_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n 7._o three_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n 14._o ad_fw-la ephes_n 4._o five_o 11._o 12._o &_o 13._o &_o 14._o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n in_o his_o church_n as_o the_o apostle_n witness_v to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o be_v not_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n but_o that_o we_o may_v continue_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o say_v till_o we_o meet_v with_o christ_n in_o the_o last_o day_n but_o if_o all_o the_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n can_v err_v we_o may_v easy_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o many_o blast_n of_o strange_a doctrine_n neither_o can_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n always_o continue_v and_o in_o this_o manner_n god_n shall_v have_v provide_v very_o bad_o for_o his_o church_n that_o it_o shall_v never_o err_v 8._o final_o if_o all_o the_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v teach_v any_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o faith_n there_o shall_v no_o sincere_a and_o true_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n remain_v in_o the_o church_n see_v that_o only_a pastor_n and_o doctor_n be_v lawful_o call_v to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o god_n but_o without_o the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o 15_o suprac_n 8._o huius_fw-la controu_fw-fr §._o 15_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v consist_v as_o even_o our_o adversary_n confess_v and_o as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o 9_o second_o we_o take_v argument_n out_o of_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n as_o out_o of_o most_o faithful_a and_o true_a witness_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o in_o their_o time_n be_v preach_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o our_o adversary_n acknowledge_v that_o in_o their_o time_n the_o true_a and_o sincere_a faith_n of_o christ_n be_v preach_v we_o therefore_o allege_v they_o as_o witness_n of_o that_o faith_n for_o if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o who_o lieve_v at_o that_o time_n who_o will_v we_o believe_v but_o they_o be_v both_o eye_n witness_n and_o nothing_o suspect_v of_o falsehood_n as_o s._n augustine_n declare_v very_o well_o dispute_v against_o the_o pelagian_n 10._o three_o we_o take_v argument_n out_o ult._n s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o cont_n julianun_n pelag._n l._n 2._o cap._n ult._n of_o the_o holy_a father_n as_o out_o of_o those_o doctor_n who_o writing_n have_v be_v receive_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o impugn_v and_o condenne_v those_o writer_n who_o write_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o true_a faith_n lest_o their_o writing_n may_v be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o future_a church_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o approve_v their_o writing_n who_o teach_v the_o true_a faith_n there_o be_v yet_o extant_a a_o decree_n of_o the_o papae_fw-la vide_fw-la t●_n 2._o council_n inter_fw-la decreta_fw-la s._n gelasij_n papae_fw-la roman_a council_n set_v forth_o almost_o a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o year_n ago_o concern_v these_o writing_n they_o therefore_o who_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v most_o worthy_o to_o be_v believe_v because_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o our_o adversary_n confess_v have_v never_o err_v in_o judgement_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n 11._o eourthly_a we_o take_v argument_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n as_o out_o of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o learned_a man_n and_o bless_a saint_n of_o god_n for_o either_o they_o have_v the_o sincere_a true_a faith_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o we_o shall_v embrace_v the_o same_o or_o they_o have_v it_o not_o and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o they_o be_v not_o saint_n of_o god_n nor_o can_v they_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o as_o the_o apostle_n testify_v 12._o by_o this_o very_a argument_n the_o catholic_n eccles_n socrat._n l._n 5._o c._n 10._o so●on_n l_o 8._o c._n 12._o historiae_fw-la eccles_n in_o time_n past_a overcome_v the_o arian_n for_o they_o urge_v they_o to_o receive_v the_o holy_a father_n who_o write_v before_o arius_n his_o time_n or_o they_o shall_v excommunicate_v they_o as_o socrates_n and_o sozomenus_n do_v testify_v 13._o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n serve_v very_o fit_o those_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n wherein_o ult._n s._n aug._n tom_n 7._o contra_fw-la juli_n ●●●_o pe●agianun_n l._n 2._o c._n ult._n he_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n concern_v this_o matter_n for_o thus_o speak_v s._n augustine_n to_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n while_o he_o urge_v they_o with_o the_o testimony_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o be_v before_o he_o they_o have_v say_v he_o no_o regard_n either_o to_o our_o friendship_n or_o to_o you_o neither_o be_v they_o enemy_n to_o either_o of_o we_o they_o be_v neither_o angry_a with_o you_o nor_o with_o we_o they_o be_v not_o move_v with_o pity_n and_o compassion_n on_o either_o side_n what_o they_o find_v in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o h●ld_v what_o they_o have_v learn_v that_o they_o teach_v they_o deliver_v to_o their_o child_n that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o their_o own_o father_n we_o plead_v in_o our_o cause_n against_o you_o before_o these_o judge_n and_o yet_o by_o they_o our_o cause_n be_v end_v long_o since_o neither_o we_o nor_o you_o be_v so_o much_o know_v to_o they_o and_o yet_o we_o bring_v forth_o their_o sentence_n give_v in_o our_o favour_n against_o you_o we_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o begin_v any_o combat_n with_o you_o and_o yet_o so_o long_o ago_o they_o proclaim_v our_o victory_n so_o far_o s._n augustine_n 14._o final_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n a_o french_a man_n who_o live_v at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o s._n augustine_n prove_v the_o same_o very_a well_o by_o many_o reason_n and_o example_n throughout_o all_o that_o most_o learned_a book_n the_o which_o he_o write_v against_o the_o profane_a novelty_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o we_o will_v conclude_v and_o end_v this_o chapter_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o libelli_fw-la vide_fw-la pr●sertim_fw-la c._n 4_o &_o 40._o eiusdem_fw-la libelli_fw-la holy_a father_n and_o this_o our_o whole_a disputation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n with_o the_o same_o word_n wherewith_o he_o end_v that_o his_o golden_a book_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o the_o end_n of_o it_o if_o neither_o the_o apostolical_a definition_n nor_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n be_v to_o be_v violate_v whereby_o according_a to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o uniform_a consent_n of_o all_o antiquity_n all_o heretic_n and_o last_o pelagius_n celestius_fw-la and_o nestorius_n for_o these_o be_v the_o last_o heretic_n that_o live_v in_o vincentius_n his_o time_n have_v be_v always_o most_o just_o condemn_v it_o be_v necessary_a in_o truth_n that_o all_o those_o catholic_n who_o will_n hereafter_o prove_v and_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o true_a and_o lawful_a child_n of_o our_o holy_a mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v adhere_v and_o unite_v themselves_o stedfaste_o as_o also_o die_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o that_o sacred_a say_v of_o those_o holy_a father_n &_o last_o that_o they_o shall_v abhor_v detest_v banish_v and_o persecute_v all_o the_o profane_a novelty_n of_o all_o most_o wicked_a heretic_n hither_o to_o s._n vincentius_n the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n the_o fault_n escape_v in_o print_v it_o may_v please_v the_o gentle_a reader_n to_o correct_v they_o of_o his_o courtesy_n finis_fw-la
the_o tradition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n see_v that_o without_o they_o we_o can_v certain_o and_o without_o error_n know_v what_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o galathian_o 2._o second_o our_o adversary_n do_v err_v in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o right_o expound_v that_o particle_n in_o the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n praeter_fw-la beside_o but_o rather_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n for_o the_o latin_a word_n praeter_fw-la as_o also_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o hebrew_n ghal_o have_v two_o signification_n in_o the_o former_a it_o signifi_v all_o that_o which_o be_v not_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n whereof_o we_o do_v speak_v in_o the_o late_a sense_n it_o signify_v that_o only_a which_o be_v contrary_a to_o that_o we_o speak_v of_o in_o which_o sense_n praeter_fw-la signify_v the_o same_o that_o contra_fw-la do_v to_o wit_n against_o the_o former_a sense_n be_v manifest_a enough_o the_o late_a be_v prove_v by_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n act._n 18._o five_o 13._o where_o all_o do_v translate_v these_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d calu_n in_o act_n apo●_n a_o 1560._o beza_n ed._n a_o 1560._o &_o 1565._o &_o 1598._o hemic_a steph._n in_o thes_n linguae_fw-la graecae_fw-la tom._n 2._o dictione_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v against_o the_o law_n so_o have_v not_o only_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n but_o also_o caluin_n and_o beza_n and_o all_o the_o french_a bibles_n of_o geneva_n likewise_o in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o roman_n the_o 26._o vers_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signyfi_v against_o nature_n so_o have_v the_o vulgar_a edition_n and_o all_o the_o french_a bibles_n of_o geneva_n yea_o cicero_n as_o witness_v henricus_n stephanus_n do_v thus_o translate_v this_o phrase_n out_o of_o greek_a again_o in_o the_o 4._o to_o the_o roman_n the_o 18._o verse_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v against_o as_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n and_o beza_n have_v in_o all_o edition_n moreover_o in_o the_o 11._o to_o the_o roman_n the_o 24._o vers_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v against_o as_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n and_o all_o the_o bibles_n of_o geneva_n have_v final_o in_o the_o last_o to_o the_o roman_n the_o 17._o vers_fw-la aswell_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o latin_a word_n praeter_fw-la in_o our_o interpreter_n signify_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o contra_fw-la do_v as_o manifest_o appear_v by_o the_o precedent_a word_n for_o dissension_n and_o scandal_n be_v contrary_a or_o against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o only_o beside_o his_o doctrine_n wherefore_o caluin_n in_o his_o commentary_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n 1557._o upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o sebastian_n castalio_n and_o all_o the_o french_a bibles_n of_o geneva_n have_v contrary_a or_o against_o the_o doctrine_n and_o albeit_o beza_n translate_v it_o beside_o the_o doctrine_n yet_o in_o his_o last_o edition_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n 1598._o he_o translate_v it_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o in_o his_o annotation_n he_o warn_v that_o it_o be_v rather_o so_o to_o be_v translate_v it_o be_v not_o therefore_o strange_a or_o absurd_a that_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o latin_a praeter_fw-la shall_v fignify_v the_o same_o that_o contra_fw-la do_v 3._o but_o now_o that_o this_o word_n may_v not_o only_o be_v thus_o use_v but_o that_o also_o it_o must_v necessary_o be_v so_o understand_v and_o take_v in_o this_o place_n we_o have_v show_v by_o the_o absurdity_n which_o will_v otherwise_o follow_v the_o first_o be_v that_o s._n paul_n will_v have_v say_v anathema_n to_o s._n john_n evangelist_n who_o many_o year_n after_o the_o preach_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o yea_o after_o his_o death_n write_v his_o apocalyps_n wherein_o there_o be_v many_o new_a revelation_n which_o s._n paul_n have_v not_o preach_v to_o the_o galathan_n because_o they_o be_v not_o they_o reveal_v by_o god_n 4._o the_o second_o absurdity_n that_o s._n paul_n have_v pronounce_v anathema_n upon_o all_o those_o who_o in_o his_o time_n by_o a_o prophetical_a spirit_n 30._o 1._o cor_fw-la 14._o v._o 2._o 4._o 16._o &_o 30._o do_v daily_o prophesy_v new_a thing_n for_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o be_v many_o such_o as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o s._n paul_n can_v not_o preach_v to_o the_o galathian_o that_o which_o god_n have_v not_o yet_o reveal_v 5._o the_o three_o absurdity_n the_o apostle_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n have_v pronounce_v anathema_n against_o s._n luke_n who_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n relate_v many_o thing_n which_o happen_v long_o after_o s._n paul_n leave_v galatia_n 6._o the_o four_o absurdity_n the_o apostle_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n also_o have_v condemn_v himself_o with_o the_o say_a anathema_n for_o he_o write_v many_o epistle_n after_o he_o have_v leave_v galatia_n wherein_o he_o reat_v many_o thing_n which_o happen_v afterward_o unto_o he_o either_o at_o rome_n or_o in_o other_o place_n 7._o last_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o think_v either_o god_n after_o those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o can_v reveal_v to_o man_n nothing_o more_o by_o a_o angel_n send_v from_o heaven_n or_o that_o the_o say_a angel_n who_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n shall_v reveal_v any_o new_a thing_n but_o not_o contrary_a to_o faith_n shall_v incur_v that_o anathema_n by_o s._n paul_n see_v that_o this_o be_v to_o wrest_v the_o anathema_n upon_o god_n himself_o who_o command_v the_o angel_n to_o do_v so_o this_o place_n therefore_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o diverse_a and_o distinct_a thing_n from_o those_o which_o s._n paul_n teach_v the_o galathian_o but_o only_o of_o contrary_n and_o opposite_a thing_n unto_o they_o but_o according_a to_o this_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n praeter_fw-la all_o the_o foresay_a absurdity_n do_v cease_v for_o neither_o s._n john_n in_o his_o apocalyps_n nor_o s._n luke_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o any_o other_o which_o do_v prophesy_v nor_o s._n paul_n himself_o ever_o write_v or_o teach_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n teach_v the_o galathian_o but_o even_o god_n himself_o can_v ●8_o ad_fw-la heb._n 16._o v._o ●8_o reveal_v the_o contrary_a by_o a_o angel_n because_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o god_n to_o lie_v 8._o neither_o be_v it_o sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o say_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v afterward_o reveal_v and_o write_v be_v not_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n to_o salvation_n for_o s._n paul_n do_v not_o say_v if_o any_o shall_v euangelize_n unto_o you_o any_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o absolute_o if_o any_o shall_v euangelize_n any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o you_o have_v receyve_v moreover_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v afterward_o set_v down_o in_o holy_a scripture_n be_v true_a point_n of_o faith_n the_o which_o every_o christian_a be_v necessary_o bind_v to_o believe_v if_o not_o express_o yet_o at_o the_o least_o virtual_o and_o general_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v if_o not_o express_o yet_o at_o the_o least_o virtual_o and_o general_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v with_o a_o assure_a faith_n all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o holy_a writ_n to_o be_v most_o certain_a and_o true_a 9_o final_o even_o our_o adversary_n confession_n do_v convince_v this_o to_o be_v most_o true_a for_o now_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o by_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n be_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n do_v belong_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v point_n of_o say_v and_o therefore_o they_o may_v be_v lawful_o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n as_o we_o have_v 3._o suprac_n 3._o say_v before_o but_o all_o these_o be_v distinct_a thing_n from_o those_o which_o be_v express_o write_v in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o antecedent_n whereby_o some_o other_o thing_n may_v be_v infer_v be_v distinct_a from_o that_o which_o be_v infer_v for_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a illation_n if_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v be_v infer_v from_o itself_o but_o that_o which_o be_v infer_v in_o a_o good_a collection_n be_v never_o contrary_a to_o the_o antecedent_n the_o apostle_n therefore_o speak_v of_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o he_o and_o not_o absolute_o of_o any_o other_o distinct_a doctrine_n 10._o and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o father_n do_v often_o say_v that_o s._n paul_n affirm_v in_o this_o place_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v teach_v beside_o that_o subfinem_fw-la august_n tom_n 7._o contra_fw-la light_v petil._n donat._n l._n 3._o cap._n 6._o august_n tom._n
age_n afterward_o she_o have_v do_v the_o same_o for_o since_o the_o sixth_o hundred_o year_n all_o these_o nation_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o ●_o baron_fw-fr tom._n 9_o 10._o 11._o &_o 12._o magdeb_n cen●_n 7._o 8._o 9_o 10._o 11._o 12._o 13._o ubiq_n cap._n ●_o christ_n by_o the_o child_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o german_n the_o francones_n bavarians_n wandalls_n bulgarian_n sclavonians_n polonian_n dane_n moravians_n hungarian_n norwegians_n frisone_n norman_n suevians_n visigothe_n lituanian_o as_o not_o only_o catholic_a writer_n do_v testify_v which_o baronius_n allege_v but_o even_o our_o adversary_n also_o in_o their_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o in_o this_o our_o age_n how_o many_o have_v be_v convert_v from_o idolatry_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n indies_n by_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o none_o be_v ignorant_a 11._o this_o office_n of_o the_o church_n in_o time_n past_o tertullian_n observe_v what_o shall_v i_o 42._o tertull._n de_fw-fr praesc_fw-la advers_a haeret._n 42._o speak_v of_o the_o preach_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n see_v that_o this_o office_n and_o business_n belong_v not_o unto_o they_o he_o speak_v of_o heretic_n who_o do_v not_o convert_v infidel_n but_o overthrow_n and_o pervert_v christian_n 12._o and_o s._n augustine_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n 11._o s._n aug._n tom._n 8._o l._n 13._o cont_n ●austum_n manich._n c._n 12._o jerem._n 7._o v._o 11._o say_v that_o heretic_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o partridge_n by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o partridge_n nourish_v and_o gather_v together_o those_o which_o she_o have_v not_o bring_v forth_o for_o s_n augustine_n affirm_v that_o heretic_n go_v about_o to_o seduce_v and_o deceyve_v christian_n who_o they_o see_v bear_v again_o to_o god_n by_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n 13._o the_o three_o reason_n the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o prevail_v against_o all_o persecutor_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n say_v our_o principi●m_fw-la matt._n 16._o v._n 18._o s._n hilar._n l._n 7._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la circa_fw-la principi●m_fw-la lord_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o my_o church_n hereupon_o say_v hilary_n this_o be_v the_o property_n of_o the_o church_n that_o she_o than_o prevail_v most_o when_o she_o be_v persecute_v than_o she_o be_v understand_v when_o she_o be_v reprehend_v than_o she_o get_v the_o victory_n when_o she_o be_v as_o it_o be_v forsake_v but_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v sustain_v hitherto_o many_o persecution_n contradiction_n assault_n and_o false_a slander_n but_o she_o have_v ever_o get_v the_o victory_n both_o of_o the_o gentill_n heretic_n &_o bad_a christian_n persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o all_o ecclesiastical_a history_n &_o experience_n also_o do_v testify_v for_o even_o to_o this_o day_n for_o the_o space_n of_o almost_o a_o thousand_o and_o six_o hundred_o year_n she_o be_v still_o constant_a immovable_a and_o invincible_a in_o despite_n of_o all_o her_o adversary_n 14._o our_o adversary_n indeed_o in_o diverse_a book_n publish_v against_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n heap_v up_o together_o many_o in_o diverse_a age_n who_o have_v oppose_v themselves_o against_o he_o but_o they_o can_v find_v none_o who_o have_v at_o any_o time_n quite_o overthrow_v the_o roman_a church_n we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o wicked_a man_n be_v never_o want_v who_o vehement_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o centur._n bal●us_n &_o magdeb._n centur._n the_o devout_a servant_n of_o god_n but_o at_o the_o last_o they_o be_v all_o overcome_v by_o the_o church_n and_o they_o shall_v never_o get_v the_o victory_n against_o she_o for_o christ_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o oppugn_v his_o church_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o she_o 15._o final_o look_v how_o many_o oppugner_n and_o perlecutor_n of_o the_o roman_a 18._o matt._n 16._o v._n 18._o church_n our_o adversary_n heap_n together_o so_o many_o famous_a monument_n unaware_o do_v they_o erect_v by_o which_o the_o triumph_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v commend_v to_o posterity_n against_o their_o will_n but_o there_o can_v be_v a_o famous_a victory_n unless_o some_o conflict_n go_v before_o &_o so_o we_o see_v true_o fullfil_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o which_o long_o before_o be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n david_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n they_o have_v often_o oppugn_v i_o even_o from_o any_o youth_n but_o they_o can_v not_o prevail_v the_o which_o be_v 2._o psal_n 128._o vel_fw-la tuxta_fw-la heb._n 129._o v._o 2._o better_o express_v in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o latin_a edition_n 16._o this_o continual_a victory_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n against_o her_o enemy_n s._n paul_n foretell_v very_o clear_o when_o he_o write_v in_o this_o manner_n to_o the_o same_o church_n the_o god_n of_o peace_n will_v crush_v satan_n under_o your_o foot_n quick_o 3._o rom._n ult._n v._n 20._o s._n hier._n in_o apol._n advers_a ruffin_n s._n cypr._n epist_n 55._o ad_fw-la cornel_n seul_fw-fr 1._o epist_n 3._o to_o this_o very_a place_n appertain_v that_o which_o s._n hierome_n write_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o althority_n of_o s._n paul_n can_v be_v change_v albeit_o a_o angel_n shall_v teach_v the_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v once_o preach_v and_o before_o he_o s._n cyprian_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o roman_n be_v those_o unto_o who_o falsehood_n or_o infidelity_n can_v have_v no_o access_n 17._o the_o four_o reason_n the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v keep_v and_o preserve_v always_o faith_n sound_n and_o without_o any_o stain_n of_o heresy_n which_o then_o she_o perform_v when_o she_o discover_v and_o condemn_v all_o heretical_a and_o erroneous_a opinion_n and_o when_o she_o explicate_v and_o declare_v all_o doubtful_a and_o obscure_a point_n of_o faith_n moreover_o she_o command_v obstinate_a and_o wilful_a person_n to_o hold_v their_o peace_n final_o she_o censure_v all_o erroneous_a and_o dangerous_a book_n lest_o catholic_n be_v indomage_v thereby_o either_o in_o faith_n or_o in_o good_a manner_n all_o these_o thing_n the_o roman_a church_n and_o no_o other_o as_o appeareth_z by_o all_o historiographer_n have_v always_o ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n perform_v yea_o there_o be_v many_o heresy_n the_o which_o even_o our_o adversary_n do_v condemn_v which_o be_v in_o time_n pass_v not_o by_o any_o general_a council_n but_o only_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n suppress_v as_o that_o of_o the_o pelagian_n donatist_n priscillianistes_n etc._n etc._n 18._o the_o five_o reason_n the_o office_n of_o persecut_fw-la s._n ambr_n in_fw-la orat_fw-la de_fw-fr obitufratris_fw-la satyri_fw-la victor_n l._n 1._o &_o 2._o de_fw-fr vandal_n persecut_fw-la the_o true_a church_n be_v by_o her_o name_n &_o communion_n to_o distinguish_v true_a catholic_n from_o false_a and_o counterfeit_n but_o by_o the_o name_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n catholic_n be_v always_o distinguish_v from_o heretic_n he_o ask_v the_o bishop_n say_v s._n ambrose_n speak_v of_o his_o brother_n whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o also_o s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n victor_n 21._o s._n greg._n turon_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr glor_n mart._n c._n 25._o 79._o &_o 80._o vide_fw-la council_n 3._o tolet._n in_o princ_fw-la &_o baron_n tom._n ●_o a_o 584._o n._n 35._o in_o fine_a euthin_n 2._o pan_n tit_n 21._o vticensis_n who_o live_v in_o s._n augustine_n time_n do_v testify_v that_o the_o arian_n be_v wont_a to_o call_v catholic_n roman_n or_o romanist_n the_o same_o write_v s._n gregory_n turonensis_n of_o the_o arian_n goth_n which_o be_v in_o spain_n the_o bishop_n also_o of_o spain_n be_v convert_v from_o arianisme_n to_o the_o catholic_a ●ayth_n among_o other_o thing_n they_o condemn_v a_o certain_a book_n set_v forth_o by_o the_o arian_n with_o this_o title_n the_o passage_n of_o the_o roman_n to_o the_o arian_n church_n so_o the_o heretic_n call_v paulinian_n call_v catholic_n romanist_n as_o euthimius_n testify_v so_o final_o now_o a_o day_n catholic_n be_v by_o our_o adversary_n call_v papist_n and_o romanist_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 19_o the_o sixth_o reason_n the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o keep_v and_o maintain_v the_o holy_a scripture_n faithful_o &_o continual_o but_o our_o adversary_n can_v assign_v no_o other_o church_n as_o keeper_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n beside_o the_o roman_a church_n therefore_o it_o be_v only_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n for_o our_o adversary_n can_v say_v that_o they_o receive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n from_o heaven_n not_o from_o